ill 1 a* i('f 'f!!i*'" .'• 1 ill';! '• Jiiilli;!!):"'''' ;Mf'.«, t IP vi iiiip ilill i |l a,i| ii5 P P LOGIC, OB THE ART OF REASONING SIMPLIFIED. ilT THIS WOBK REMARKS ARE MADE OJf DISTINCTIOIfS BETWEEN REASONING BY INDUCTION, ANALOGY, AND iSYLLOGISM, ILLUSTRATED ; THE Ancient and Modern Modes of Argumentation Contrasted, AND THE General Process of Reasoning, and its susceptibilityof Improvement from Art stated. IT ALSO CONTAINS THE DISTINCTIONS BETWEEN Metaphysical, Moral, and Mathematical Demonstration, the Method of Detecting Fallacies or Deviations from Correct Reasoning, and the Rules of Interpretation, Controversy, and Method. CLOSING WITH On a variety of interesting topics, to guide and develope the reasoning powers of thfe youthful inqui^rer after truth. BY S. E. PARKER, AUTHOR OP THE ARTICLES PROSODY, 'aUANTITT, AND VERSIFICATION IN DR. REES' CYCLOPEDIA. Robert Davis, Publisher. WiLLIAia STAVELY, PRINTER AND GENERAL AGENt, No. 12 Fear street. SOLD BY GEORGE &, BYINGTON, CORNER OF CHESNUt AND FIFTH SXS. iSOSTON — JAS. B. DOW, 362, AND C. STIMpSON, 72 WASHINGTON STREEt. 1831'. 5=^'^ ^ Ts Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1837, by Rev. Robert Davis, in the Clerk's Office of the District Court of the Eastern District of Pennsylvania. PREFACE. That man is an intelligent creature, or a being capable of receiv- ing intelligence to an indefinite extent, is not only a well known and established fact, but also one which involves the most important consequences. This single attribute of human existence not only elevates man in the scale of being, constitutes him capable of unli- mited improvement, and of communicating it to others, but at the same time, as to the discharge of his duties, grants him the privi- lege to increase not only his respectability, but also his usefulness to the society with which he is connected. Though, on the one hand, it would be impossible duly to appreciate a gift so inestima- ble, yet on the other, be it remembered, that there is nothing given to man, there is no talent with which he is endued, but what re- quires cultivation. Not only our corporeal but also our mental fa- culties, unless they have salutary exercise, are liable to decline. The body for want of it is liable to wane into the most lamentable state of langor and imbecility ; and the mind, for reasons perfectly analogous, through the want of exercising the means, with which we are so abundantly privileged, becomes inert and capable of being not only deceived by others, but also irrevocably injured through our own neglect. It cannot for a single moment be doubt- ed, that man, as a sentient, intelligent being, stands as a candidate for happiness. All men seek it, in one way or the other : a single exception would be a parodox in the history of humanity. Accord- ing to the extent precisely of our mental vision, not only happiness on the one hand, is before us, until it prospectively rise into all the excellency of a prize whose value is ineflfable, but also on the other, the risk of losing that at which all, in one way or the other aim, is felt with a vigilant sensibility that constitutes the best guar- antee of success. Attention is an important act in the mind of man ; when that is gained much is done, yet not all. Though the prospect of success, from attention, immediately rise above zero in the scale of expectancy, yet more is wanting. An object the most desirable may be proposed, yet information of the means of its attainment may be either wanting, or we are not possessed of the method of so connecting the several parts of that information to- gether, as from thence to deduce a conclusion such, as shall infalli- bly lead to the attainment of the object desired. Hence man, though capable of intelligence, infallible : but especially is that man 4 PREFACE. fallible, who through want of a/fenf ion, through negXeci of informa-- Hon, and of the method of deriving correct and practical conclusions from the same, is as the field, which though capable of producing grain, wheat, and the most luxuriant fruits, remains, through want of cul- ture, not only barren, but encumbered with the most noxious weeds. And happy indeed would it be, were this mere nega^ tive loss, this simple unproductiveness and sterihty, all ;^happy, in this case, would it he, were we warranted by truth and fact, to consider that this would be all the consequence ; as if man, man to whom so much is given, could be irresponsible, when his respon- sibility rises precisely in proportion to his intellectual superiority, and the privileges of which it is his indispensable duty to avail him-« self. It is no pait of our present object to define what happiness is, for which we are all, in one way or the other, candidates ; nor to say, from whence we are principally expecting it ; whether in one, or in many ways. It is suflficient to affirm that we are all waiting for that, which questionless is the very fruition of our being, and whose loss renders it even desirable that that being had never existed^ We are all either expecting it, in an object, purely intellectual, or per- haps we in viewing ourselves as members of a society, from whose interests we are not isolated, contemplate it, at least as to all its minOr sources, divided into diverse branches of secular and civil polity. In each and in all these, and in all the various departments of hu- man life, we are surrounded by various means of artifice and de- ception, and our security from their subterfuges, and the possibili- ty of our ultimate attainment of intellectual excellency and happi- ness, entirely depend on the correct and successful culture of the inestimable talent with which we are endued, and th€ attentive and diligent use of the privileges with which we are so highly favored. Truth and Error stand so pre-eminently opposed to each other that nothing more than their simple juxta-position is requisite to in- dicate their immutable hostility. Truth implies and comprehends that which is of the highest importance to man : and the more ac- curate and ready our methods of detecting and exposing errors are, the more certain are we of being armed against the most fatal ene- mies not only to ourselves, but to the human family at large. Truth, one would imagine, is so remote from error, or so totally distinct from it, that every rational being, every one capable of discrimina- tion, could need no Rule, no Art, no System, to assist him to separate the one from the other. Yet the experience, not of a day, nor yet of a life, but the history of centuries past, informs us that nothing is more imperatively needed than such Rule, Art, or System, However opposite the characters of Truth and Error may be, yet there is no fact in history more important and striking, than that man, notwithstanding his capability of intelligence and information, has not always distinguished the one from, th^ other. The pages PREFACE. 5 of history, the schisms in the church, the divisions in the schools, the countless tomes of controversy, the opposition of counsel at the bar, and the conflicts of party in politics, and even the very wars and bloodshed in which they have too often issued, all rise in volu- minous testimony of this serious and melancholy fact. Error, how- ever opposed to Truth, yet nevertheless may be so disguised, so diluted, so presented under the illusions of twilight or so mixed up with what is true, that unless we are possessed of the means to ex- pose the counterfeit, the test to detect the ingredient that vitiates, we are liable to be deceived through semblances the most specious and imposing. Error is not inaptly compared to poison. In the extent of their destruction they may differ ; the latter kills a few bodies, the former its thousand, its myriad souls. *' Poison," ob- serves one, " in its concentrated state, nauseates at once, but diluted it may deceive and destroy a city." Thus error exists, even in the present age, diluted, disguised, throughout the whole of human society, to an extent such, that on no subject, theological, political, philosophical, domestic, or foreign, can we find two men, that in all points agree : yet truth in each subject is only one, whilst error, sophistry, or the mistake of a figure in the calculation, may be multiplied, blended, and distorted to an extent indefinite, proportion- ate to the opacity in the mental vision, or to the means neglected to point out the fallacy and rectify the whole. That for ages past Error and Sophistry have imposed their de- structive effects on myriads reputed rational, is one proof out of many, of the necessity of an aid, which unassisted nature does not ordinarily bestow. Even in the political department how often may it be observed, that one speaker advocates measures diametrically op- posed to the other ; and the address of each perhaps is so plausible, as to gain half the house. Are both right ? Certainly not, per- haps neither, but, at least, half the house is deceived ! and that half, if it prevail, will, on a vital question mislead the nation, and involve it in privaiion and suffering. Are there no means then of analyz- ing the address that contains the fallacy ; no mode of discovering either the false premises assumed ; or if they are right, of showing that the conclusion does not logically follow from them ? Was there no fallacy, whether of composition, division, or accident, no begging the question, nor of building consequences on a mistaken one ? Impossible ; these, or one or more of them, must have been concealed, possibly even from the speaker himself, in one or the other of these orations. And the question yet remains, is there no means of more frequently and successfully exposing error, which in its whole extent may be justly pronounced to be, the most griev- ous curse that afflicts humanity. How does it happen that in matters which immediately affect our secular interest, or touch dishonestly our pocket, we provide laws and a vigilant police to detect the offender, that has practised on us to our injury, the artifices of deception, whilst in a thousand cases a2 O PREFACE., whose consequences may not be so tangible, yet not less impor- tant, we suffer so many that will only take the trouble to think and dress up their theory with plausibility,. to practise on our credulity ? Though any man as a free agent, should have the liberty to think as he pleases, yet that constitutes no reason that another should fol- low in his wake. Is not this, however, a case general to a very lamentable extent. Could a history of the world be so constructed as to point out, on the one hand, the heresiarchs in the church, the demagogues in politics, or the principal leaders in opinion or par- ty ; and on the other, the multitudes on whose credulity, for want of examination, they have practised ; that history would be lamen- tably libellous on humanity. Could we allow this history to pass in panoramic vision before us ; could we enter ourselves on the long travel, or penetrate the deep vista of time that it involves ; — could we view the mournful shades that have veiled the truth ; — count the myriad suns that have risen and set without imparting one ray to the benighted mind ; — could we enter into the grave assem- blies of the ancients, and view the gloom of error resting on the whole ; — could we count the myriad tongues, the thousand pens that have labored to disseminate its influence, or the countless presses that have groaned beneath its volumes counted by the ton : — if in addition to this, we could take another estimate, and scan or mea- sure the reign, the tyranny of error, not by the year, nor yet by the age, but by the century ; and with alarm discover, that even at present, and under the same insidious guise as ever, it is undermin- ing our interests of every kind ; and that deception in its every form is as sedulously at work now as a thousand years ago ; we should then indeed form some faint idea, faint as to the magnitude of its importance, of the necessity of every aid to enable us and others to inculcate truth on the one hand, with all the force of that ar- gument of which it is so happily susceptible, and to expose, on the other, the common enemy, that has with such artful diguise, im- posed on so many myriads of our fellow men, to all the contempt and abhorrence to which its mendacity and deceit so justly entitle it. On the sacred page, we read, indeed, of the ^^ times of igno- norance.'^ And we are likewise aware that a considerate parent does not expect as much from his infant child, as he does from his mature offspring. *' Of them to whom much is given," however, *' much is required." But we cannot with propriety call this the time of ignorance. Wilful ignorance, indeed, may and does ex- ist ; yet not necessary ignorance. We have not only the means of information at command, but may possess ourselves with the mode of rightly using it, to our own advantage, and to the benefit of the so- ciety to which we belong. Can we then possibly take a view of past ages and of the lamentable consequences of ignorance and er- ror on the myriads who are now " minish'd from the sons of men,'* without feeling, without compassion, without philanthropy ? In honor, in compliment toourselves^ we presume that we have not PREFACE. 7 only self-interest, but philanthropy too ; and both are involved in the argument. It is no uncommon case that we knowbest how to se- cure our neighbor's interest, when we know how to secure our own ; and his being secured, will often promote ours also. We are not, and cannot be, isolated beings : both our own interest and that of others are in one common stake. The success of fallacy through the supineness of times past, the examples of past ages, and the superior privileges of this, our own interest, and those of the thousands with whom we are connected, all rise in proof that our welfare and happines are dependant on, if not identified with, our strenuous exertions. Our whole life is, or ought to be, con- cerned either in the acquisition of truth, or in the detection of what is contrary to its precepts, to whatever department of life those precepts belong. Enough no doubt has already been said, for the conviction of every ingenuous and liberal mind relative to the utility and im- portance of Logic. But to our own remarks on this point, we shall take the liberty to add the following given by Dr. Whately. " If it were inquired what is to be regarded, as the most appropriate intellectual occupation of man, as man, what would be the answer ? The statesman is engaged with political affairs; the soldier with military ; the mathematician with the properties of numbers and magnitudes ; the merchant with commercial concerns, &;c.; but in what are all and each of these employed ; employed, that is as men? for there are many modes of exercising the faculties, men- tal as well as bodily, which are in great measure common to us with the lower animals. Evidently, in reasoning ; men are all em- ployed in deducing, well or ill, conclusions from premises ; each concerning the subject of his own particular business. If, there- fore, it be found that the j)rocess going on daily, in each of so many different minds, is, in any respect the same; and if the principles on which it is conducted can be reduced to a regular system, and if rules can be deduced from that system, for the bet- ter conducting of the process, then it cannot be denied that such a system and such rules must be especially vjorthy the attention, not qjf^ the members of this or that profession merely, but of every one who is desirous of possessing a well cultivated mind. To understand the theory of that which is the appropriate in- tellectual occupation of man in general, and to learn to do that well, which every one will and must do, whether well or ill, may surely be considered as an essential part of a liberal education. " But many who allow the use of systematic principles in other things, are accustomed to cry up common sense as the sufficient and only safe guide in reasoning. Now, by common sense is meant, an exercise of the judgment unaided by any art or system of rules ; such an exercise as we must necessarily employ in numberless cases of daily occurrence ; in which, having no estab- lished principles to guide us, — ^no line of procedure distinctly chalk- 8 PREFACE. ed out, — we must needs act on the best extemporaneous conjectures we can form. He wlio is eminently skilled in doing- this, is said to possess a superior degree of common sense. Bnt that common sense is only our second-best guide; that the rules of art, if judi- ciously framed, are always desirable when'they can be had, is an as- sertion, for the truth of which I may appeal to the testimony of mankind in general ; which is so much the more valuable, inasmuch as it may be accounted the testimony of adversaries* For the generality have a strong predilection in favor of common sense,- ex- cept in those points in which they respectively possess the know- ledge of a system of rules, in which they deride any one who trusts to unaided common sense. A sailor will perhaps, despise the pre- tensions of medical men, and prefer treating a disease by common sense ; but he would ridicule the proposal of navigating a ship by common sense without regard to the principles of the nautical art. A physician again, will perhaps contemn systems of political economy, of logic or metaphysics, and insist on the superior wis- dom of trusting to common sense in such matters, but he would never approve of trusting to common sense in the treatment of diseases. Neither again would the architect recommend a reliance on com~ mon sense alone, in building, nor the musician in music, to the neglect of those systems of rules, which in their respective arts,, have been deduced from scientific reasoning aided by experience. And the induction might be extended to every department of prac- tice. Since, therefore, each gives the preference to unassisted com- mon sense, only in those cases where he himself has nothing else to trust to, and invariably resorts to the rules of art, whenever he possesses the knowledge of them, it is plain that mankind univer- sally bear their testimony, though unconsciously and unwillingly,. to the preferableness of systematic knowledge to conjectural judg- ment. " There is, however, abundant room for the employment of com- mon sense in the application of the system. To bring arguments,, out of the form, in which they are expressed in conversation, and in books, into the regular logical shape, must be of course, the business of common sense, aided by practice; for such arguments are, by supposition, not as yet within the province of science ; else they would be already strict syllogisms. To exercise the learner in this operation, I have subjoined, in the appendix, some exam- ples, both of isolated argument, and of the analysis of argumenta- tive works. " The cause of truth universally, and not least of religious truth, is benefitted by every thing that tends to promote sound reasonings and facilitate the detection of fallacy. The adversaries of our faith would, I am convinced, have been on many occasions, more satis- factorily answered, and would have had fewer openings for cavil, * " Fas est doceri ab hosteJ* PREFACE. had a thorough acquaintance with Logic been a more common qualification than it is. Not only all those who are engaged in or designed for the sacred ministry, but all others who are sensible that the cause of true religion is not a concern of the ministry alone, should remember that this is no time to forego any of the advantages which that cause may derive from an active and judici- ous cultivation of the faculties. It is not, however, solely or chief- ly for polemical purposes that the cultivation of the reasoning faculty is desirable ; in persuading and investigating, in learning or teaching, in all the multitude of cases, in which it is our object to arrive at just conclusions, or to lead others to them, it is most im- portant. A knowledge of logical rules will not indeed supply the want of other knowledge, nor was it even proposed, by any one who really understood the science, to substitute it for any other; but it is no less true that no other can be substituted for it : that it is valuable in every branch of study ; and that it enables us to use the knowledge we possess to the greatest advantage." We cannot here forbear to mention that it was our privilege to be personally acquainted with one, who, if ever man was, was a master in Logic ; and very fortunately so, for no man, since the seventeenth century was ever more engaged in controversy; and what was the consequence ? It is immediately and every where appa- rent. The ease with which he, on every occasion, managed his adversary ; the dexterity he displayed in immediately detecting the fallacy, wherever and however concealed ; the facility he evinced in dissipating his illogical conclusions, and the suavity and temper which were prevalent through the whole, left him decidedly, in the estimation of every rational and candid mind, in undisputed posses- sion of the field; — -and why ? — He was an eminent Logician. But however we would advocate the acquisition of truth, it is by no means our intention to intimate that Logic, or the Art of Rea- soning, is the only means by which Truth, in every sense, is dis- covered. To the representation of Logic as the method of discover- ing Truth, as if it were the only method ; or even a method, with- out stating what are those truths we are to expect from the process which Logic institutes, may be in no small degree attributed the misunderstanding of the specific object it proposes. Truths are either those of Information or Instruction. The former we de- rive from observation or testimony, or even from experiment insti- tuted at the time, by a conjectural conclusion deduced from as- sumed premises. The latter, truths of Instruction, we derive from data, which though they may be in the possession of others, yet probably have been employed either to no purpose, or misemploy- ed by fallacy and incorrect reasoning, to a wrong one. These data fall within the province of Logic, either from them to deduce a truth not before perceived as a necessary consequence of the premises they afford ; or to detect an error resulting from their misapplication. 10 PREFACE, *' When it is asked," says Dr. Whately, " whether such great discoveries as have been made in Natural Philosophy, were ac- comphshed or can be accomplished by Reasoning ? the inquirer should be reminded that the question is ambiguous. It may be answered in the affirmative, if by Reasoning is meant to be in- cluded, the assumption of Premises. ^^ To the assumption of pre- mises, frequently scientific men, in search for some new or undis- covered truth, are indebted ; from which, though at first, nothing better than sl probable conjecture can be inferred, yet that conjec- tural inference may institute a course of experiments, which may ultimately establish the fact. " Thus Sir Humphrey Davy finding that the flame of hydrogen gas was not communicated through a long slender tube, conjectured that a shorter, but still slenderer tube, would answer the same purpose. This led him to try the experiment, in which by successively shortening the tube, and at the same time lessening its bore, he arrived at last at the wire- gauze of his safety-lamp." Now throughout the whole of this pro- cess, assumed premises^ conjecture, experiment, it is evident that a kind of inductive reasoning was going on, that is, so far as rea- soning hypothetically, and in a necessary case, from assumed pre- mises, is acting until positive ones can supply their place ; yet it is not that strictly, in which Logic, that pretends not to the discovery of new Truths in an unrestricted sense, is concerned. Truths of Information belong to the sciences ; to Theology, Ethics, Jurisprudence, to the Arts, and to the Business and Experi- ence of common life ; and a distinct class of them to each. For the acquisition of these, the sciences, and the several sources respec- tively to which Truths of Information belong, must be duly con- sulted. These are the volumes from which we have to cull this kind of intellectual furniture, and nothing else can properly com- municate it. It is here too that we not only have to derive our Information, and all the truth which it implies, but, moreover, clear and distinct ideas of each individual, both in its isolated and relative position, without which all our knowledge is vain. The Instructor in Logic takes it for granted that his pupil comes pre- pared with these, that he has them not to seek, or at least that he is furnished with as mani/ as are necesmry for his immediate purpose. It is of considerable importance in this early stage of our in- quiry, to state distinctly that it is to the sciences, and to the proper sources that we must look for Information ; but it is ihe peculiar province of Logic to teach the most salutary and practical use of the knowledge we possess, either for the purpose of instructitig ourselves or others, by that only argumentative process, which must necessarily, in every rational mind, demand conviction ; or for the refutation of conclusions, whether deduced from irrelevant premises, or falsely derived from true ones ; sophisms which are 00 frequently exemplified by those who are dispossessed of that • PREFACE. 11 ^discrimination, and unacquainted with the mode of detecting fal- lacy which it is the business of Logic to impart. When we, on first opening the pages of Euclid, read, " a line is length without breadth ;" *' a plane rectilineal angle is the inclina- tion of two straight lines to one another that meet in a point ;" ** that a triangle is a plane figure bounded by three lines," &c. ; from hence we derive Ideas, and Truths of Information ; but it is not the business of Logic to teach us these : these are nothing but the mere furniture, the requisite data, that we must possess, before we can oommence and successfully employ to any benefi- cial purpose, the argumentative process. But when we are once furnished with the prerequisite terms and premises, and come to read, "If two triangles have two sides, and the included angle in the one, equal two sides and the included angle in the other, the triangles will be equal and identical in all respects," we require the demonstrative or argumentative process ; the result afforded by which is a Truth of Instruction, which it is the province of Reasoning or Logic to establish on premises from which the proof is legitimately derived. Nothing is more calculated to throw into the shade, if not most unjustly into disrepute, an art or science, than misrepresenting its distinct and specific object; loading it with more than it professes to perform, imputing to it obligations which are either inconsistent with itself, or disreputable in themselves. A time was, when the object of Astronomy was not distinguished from that of Astrology ^ or the pretended art of divining futurities from the configurations and motions of the heavenly bodies. And had not Astronomy been happily rescued from this misconception, and established on the basis of its own independent reputation, it might to the present day, in the estimation of the uninformed, have ranked in a grade equally low with that of palmistry, legerdemain or necromancy. A time existed in which even the respectable science of Chemis- try was merged into the mystified shades of Alchemy, whose most popular and ostensible object was to find the secret of turning all things into gold ; or the panacea, the universal cure of all diseases to which humanity is subject, without excepting even mortality it- self. Chemistry, however, very fortunately has emerged from this eclipse, and presents itself disencumbered of distortions not its own, in that elegant form in which it is at once so interesting and useful to society. But who are they, that from want of proper discrimination, have for a period nearly equal to the night of Alchemy, succeeded to throw the shades of misrepresentation on the peculiar and specific object of Logic, and that so artfully, as to convert characters, in other respects of considerable respectability and importance in the Republic of Letters, to their own heresy ? Had these been the mere tyros in the art, those who had contented themselves with merely some hasty glances at an introductory chapter, there would 12 PREFACE. have been nothing in the circumstance uncommon, and they would have verified only the ancient adage, so general in its application, " damnunt quod non intelligunt," they condemn what they do not understand. For the honor of those, however, who have professed- ly undertaken to teach the art, or to write voluminous treatises.on the science, we could wish that we had it not to say, that the charge lies exclusively at their door, 2y u o iiS'a'niaM?^ Ka.i rccvra. ov ytvaxruiis, "Art thou a teacher, and knowest not these things ?" implies a charge equally applicable at present as in former times. Amongst them we could mention one, who has written a volume with no other effect, than to evince the possibility of a man's writing more than 300 pages on a subject, which he, from the first time he took up his pen to the last page it had written, evidently did not understand* To discover a ship at sea, 300 miles from the port whence she had sailed, without any one on board knowing either where they were, or whither they were going, would lead to the inference that neither compass was in the binnacle, nor navigator in the cabin ; but to find a being reputed intellectual, navigating over 300 pages of heteroge- neous and irrelevant matter, performing a sort of zig-zag traverse wide of the mark, and having no bearing on the object originally proposed, is merely one example, among the many thousands which might be added, of the danger of following any one, merely because he is a teacher, without the test of our own examination and scrutiny, and the exercise of that function which it is the spe- cific object of Logic itself to develope and explain. No science can be expected to make any considerable progress^ which instead of being regularly cultivated on right principles, has been liable to the misrepresentation of those who never correctly understood its specific object themselves, nor therefore could teach it to others. From the time of the schoolmen, censured by Bacons rather for their abuse of the art, than for any legitimate purpose to which they applied it, down to the present, we meet with a host of authors, who have either written expressly on the same, or more or less made remarks thereon ; which leads to a discovery no less strange than true, that very few clearly understood the subject ! ! Only two writers, the former about the ^middle of the last century* and the latter. Dr. Whately, have proved that they were aware that Logic is chiefly concerned with the third act of the mind^ ARGUMENTATION ; and with SUCH EXPRESSION OF IT as correctly to convey its conclusiveness to others. These two alone appear to have cleared the equation from the co-efficients with which it was encumbered, from quantities foreign to its distinct intention, and that concealed it in mists of metaphysical irrelevancy. It is therefore not unreasonable to hope, that as the age at last arrived, when Astronomy threw away the anamorphosis of Astro* logy, by which she was disfigured ; and Chemistry of Alchemy^ so Logic, with equal success, will divest herself of all the volumi* nous mysticisms quite foreign to her definite design, and that hejf PRBPACE. 13 claim to utility will appear not less clear, than does the precious metal when detached from the ore, that has for ages concealed it from the use and general benefit of mankind. Of all the preceding Treatises on Logic, Dr. Whately's* may be justly entitled the chef-d'oeuvre. To his work, this is, through- out avowedly indebted. His remarks on the specific intention of the art, and on the identity of the process of argumentation in the mind, whether expressed artificially or not, are at once too im- portant and interesting to be omitted ; and their value alone will be a sufificient apology for their insertion. *' With the exception of Aristotle, scarcely a writer on Logic can be mentioned, who has clearly perceived, and steadily kept in view its real nature and object. Before his time, no distinction was made between the science of which we are speaking, and that which is now called metaphysics. It is not, therefore, much to be wondered at, that in still later times, several ingenious writers, form- ing their notions from professed masters of the science, and judging of its value from their failures, should have treated the system, as if it were the Aristotelian, with such unwarrantable reprobation. Therefore they have assailed the study with a host of objections, so totally irrelevant, as might excite astonishment in any one who did not fully estimate the force of prejudice," having no other basis than that of misconception. *'By these objectors, Logic has been considered to furnish a peculiar method of reasoning, instead of a method of analyzing that mental process, which must invariably take place in all cor- rect reasoning. For Logic does not bring forward the regular Syl- logism, as a distinct mode of argumentation, designed to be substi- tuted for any other mode, but as the form to which all correct rea- soning may be ultimately reduced ; and which consequently serves as a test to try the validity of any argument ; in the same manner as by chemical analysis we develope, and submit to-a distinct ex- amination the elements of which any compound body is constituted, and are thus enabled to detect any latent sophistication or im- purity." "One of the chief impediments to the attainment of a just view of the nature and object of Logic, is the not fully understanding ^Ae SAMENESS of tJic reasoning process in all cases. If as the ordina- ry mode of speaking would seem to indicate, mathematical, theo- logical, metaphysical and political reasoning were essentially dififer- €nt from each other, or different kinds of reasoning, it would fol- low that there must be so many different species of Logic. And such is perhaps the most prevailing misconception. Others again, who are aware that the simple System of Logic, may be applied to * " Elements of Logic, comprising the substance of the article in the Ency- clopedia Metropolitana, by R. Whately, D. D. Principal of St. Alban's Hall, and late Fellow of Oriel College, Oxford." 14 PREFACfi. all subjects whatever, are yet disposed to view it as n peculiar me- thod of reasoning, and not, as it is, a method of unfolding and an- alyzing our reasoning : whence many have been led, as the author of the Philosophy of Rhetoric, to talk of comparing Syllogistic Reasoning with Moral Reasoning ; taking it for granted that it is possible to reason correctly without reasoning logically ; which is, in fact, as great a blunder, as if any one were to mistake grammar for a peculiar language, and to suppose it possible to speak cor- rectly without speaking grammatically. They have in short con- sidered Logic as an art of reasoning ; whereas, so far as it is an art, it is the art of reasoning ; the Logician's object being, not to lay down principles by which one inay reason, but by which all must reason, even though they are not distinctly aware of them : to lay down rules, not which may be followed, but which cannot possibly be departed from in sound reasoning." " Supposing it then to have been perceived that the operation of reasoning is in all cases the same, the analysis of that operation could not fail to strike the mind as an interesting matter of inquiry. And moreover since apparent arguments which are unsound and inconclusive, are so often employed, either from error or design; and since even those who are not misled by these fallacies ^ are so often at a loss to detect and expose them in a manner satisfactory to others, or even to themselves ; it could not but appear desirable to lay down some general rides of reasoning, applicable to all cases, by which a person might be enabled the more readily and clearly to state the grounds of his own conviction, or of his ob- jection to the arguments of his opponent, instead of arguing at random, without any fixed and acknowledged principles to guide his procedure. Such rules would be analogous to those of arith- metic, which obviate the tediousness and uncertainty of calcula- tions in the head, wherein after much labor, different persons might arrive at different results, without any of them being able distinct- ly to point out the error of the rest. A system of such rules, it is obvious, must, instead of deserving to be called the art of wrang- ling, be more justly characterized as ' the art of cutting short wrang- ling,' by bringing the parlies to issue at once, if not to agreement ; and thus saving a waste of time and ingenuity." Whatever is an enemy to truth is an enemy toman. Prejudice* is an enemy to truth ; and, therefore, Prejudice is uniformly an enemy to man. Consequently, wherever, and on whatever subject, prejudice is found to exist, it is there that we have an enemy to suspect. Prejudice stands opposed to judgment in no feature more * " Erroneous judgments are denominated prejudices, or rash judgments, or judgments passed before we have duly examined all the circumstances of the case on which we intend to decide. Prejudice generally relate to opinions; prepossessions to attachments ; the former refers chiefly to things, the latter t» persons." — Jamieson, p. 188. PREFACE. 15 than in tl^is, that if prejudice be entitled to be termed judgment at all, it is a rash judgment^ a judgment formed without adequate ex- amination. Arithmetic itself could not be more usefully employ- ed, than to calculate, if it could, the quantity of good already lost to man, and which he is daily losing, through prejudice. Precisely then in proportion to the number of prejudices we have, or to their strength, have we, if we would secure the benefit of which other- wise they will assuredly deprive us, the more numerous and power- ful enemies to overcome. From these considerations it cannot be otherwise than evident that, whatever object or purpose we find most frequently rejected through mere prejudice or want of ex- amination, it is in that, that we have reason to believe a benefit is lost to us. And no science more frequently than Logic has been rejected through prejudice. And consequently, it is the science, in which we have reason to believe, that through want of examina- tion we have been deprived of advantage ; an advantage too that refers to all the interests in which we are concerned. The history of a science so important as Logic cannot fail to be interesting ; and none was so capable of giving it, combined with as much instruction, as one possessed of the discriminative powers of Dr. Whately. To omit it, would be an injury to this work; but to substitute our own phraseology instead of his, would be an act of temerity which we decline. We shall therefore insert it without further apology. " Zeno, the Eleatic, whom most accounts represent as the ear- liest systematic writer on the subject of Logic, or, as it^was then called. Dialectics, divided his work into three parts ; the first of which, on consequences, is censured by Socrates [Plato, Parmen,] for obscurity and confusion. In his second part, however, he fur- nished that interrogatory method of disputation, ['igoerna-tc*] which Socrates adopted, and which has since borne his name. The third part of his work was devoted to what may not be improperly term- ed the art of wrangling, [ igicrTtK>i,-\] which supplied the disputant with a collection of sophistical questions, so contrived, that the concession of some point which seemed unavoidable, immediately involved some glaring absurdity. This, if it is to be esteemed as at all falling within the province of Logic, is certainly not to be regarded, as some have ignorantly represented, as its principal or proper bu- siness. The Greek philosophers generally have unfortunately de- voted too much attention to it ; but we must beware of falling into the vulgar error of supposing the ancients to have regarded as a se- rious and intrinsically important study, that which in fact they con- sidered as an ingenious recreation. The disputants diverted them- selves in their leisure hours by making trial of their own and their adversary's acuteness, in the endeavor mutually to perplex each * Reasoning by interrogation. I Wrangling, a disputation instituted on purpose to perplex. 16 PREFACE. other with subtle fallacies ; much in the same way as men amuse themselves with propounding and guessing riddles, or with the game of chess ; to each of which diversions the sportive disputa- tions of the ancients bore much resemblance. They were closely analogous to the wrestling exercises of the Gymnasium ; these last being reckoned conducive to 'the bodily vigor and activity, as the former were to habits of intellectual acuteness ; but the immediate object in each was a sportive not a serious contest; though doubt- less fashion and emulation often occasioned an undue importance to be attached to success in each. Zeno, then, is hardly to be regarded any further as a logician than as to what respects his erotetic* me- thod of disputation ; a course of argument constructed on this principle being properly an hypothetical Sorites,t which may easily be reduced to a series of syllogisms. " To Zeno succeeded Euclid of Megara, and Antisthenes, both pupils of Socrates. The former of these prosecuted the subject of the third part of his predecessor's treatise, and is said to have been the author of many of the fallacies attributed to the Stoical school- Of the writings of the latter nothing certain is known. If, however, we suppose the above mentioned sect to have been his disciples in this study, and to have retained his principles, he certainly took a more correct view of the subject than Euclid. The Stoics divided all KiKctT, every thing that could be said, into three classes : 1st. The Simple Term ; 2d. The Proposition ; 3d. The Syllogism, viz. the hypothetical, for they seem to have had little notion of a more rigorous analysis of argument than into that familiar form. We must not here omit to notice the merits of Archytas, to whom we ,.are indebted for the doctrines of the Categories. He, however, as ^11 as the other writers on the subject, appears to have had no dis- tinct vie^w of the proper object and just limits of the science of Logic, but to have blended with it metaphysical discussions not strictly connected with it ; and to have dwelt on the investigation of the nature of terms and propositions, without maintaining a constant reference to the principles of Reasoning ; to which all the rest should be made subservient. " The state then in which Aristotle found the science, if indeed it can properly be said to have existed at all before his time, appears to have been nearly this : the division into Simple terms. Proposi- tions, and Syllogisms, had been shghtly sketched out ; the doc- trine of the Categories, and perhaps that of the Opposition of Propositions, had been laid down, and, as some believe, the Ana^ lysis of species into Genus and Difference, had been introduced by Socrates. These at best were rather the materials of the System than the System itself; the foundation of which he indeed distinct* ly claims the merit of having laid, and which remains fundamen- tally the same as he left it. * Interrogatory. I From 2«§o?, a pile : Sorites, a pile or Series of abridged Syllogisms* PREFACE. 17 ** It has been remarked that the logical system is one of those few theories which have been begun and perfected by the same in- dividual. The history of its discovery, as far as the main princi- ples of the science are concerned, properly commences and ends with Aristotle ; and this may perhaps in part account for the subse- quent perversions of it. The brevity, and simplicity of its fundamen- tal truths, to which point indeed all real science is perpetually tend- ing, has probably led many to suppose that something much more complex, abstruse and mysterious remained to be discovered. The vanity too, by which all men are prompted unduly to magnify their own pursuits, has led unphiiosophical minds, not in this case alone, but in many others, to extend the boundaries of their respective sciences, not by the patient development and just application of the principles of those sciences, but by wandering into ir- relevant subjects. The mystical employment of numbers by Pythagoras, in matters utterly foreign to arithmetic, is per- haps the earliest instance of the kind. A more curious and im- portant one is the degeneracy of astronomy into judicial astrology ; but none is more striking than the misapplication of Logic, by those who have treated of it as ' the art of rightly employing the rational faculties,'' or who have intruded into it the province of Natural Philosophy, and regarded the Syllogism as an engine for the investigation of nature ; while they overlooked the boundless field that was before them within the legitimate limits of the science ; and perceived not the importance and difficulty of the task, of com- pletintr and properly filling up the masterly* sketch before them. *' The writings of Aristotle were not only absolutely lost to the world for about two centuries, but seem to have been but little studied for a long time after their recovery. An art, however, of Logic, derived from the principles traditionally preserved by his disciples, seems to have been generally known, and to have been employed by Cicero in his philosophical works ; but the pursuit of the science seems to have been abandoned for a long time. Early in the Christian era, the Peripatetic doctrines experienced a con- siderable revival; and we meet with the names of Galen and Por- phyry as logicians : but it is not till the fifth century that Aris- totle's logical works were translated into Latin by the celebrated BoETiiius. Not one of these seems to have made any considera- ble advances in developing the theory of reasoning. Of Galen's labors little is known ; and Porphyry's principal work is merely on the Predicables. We have little of the science till the revival of learning among the Arabians, by whom Aristotle's treatises on this as well as on other subjects were eagerly studied. *' Passing by the names of some Byzantine writers of no great importance, we come to the time of the Schoolmen, whose waste of ingenuity and frivolous subtilty of disputation need not be enlarged * Aristotle's. b2 18 PREFACE. upon. It may be sufficient to observe, that their fault did not lie in their diligent study of Logic, and the high value they set upon it, but in their utterly mistaking the true nature and object of the science ; and by the attempt to employ it for the purpose of physi- cal discoveries J involving every subject in a mist of words to the exclusion of sound philosophical investigation. Their errors may serve to account for the strong terms in which Bacon sometimes appears to censure such pursuits; but that the censure was intend- ed to bear against the extravagant perversions, not the legitimate cultivation of the science, may be proved from his own observa- tions on the subject, in his advancement of learning. " His moderation, however, was not imitated in other quarters. Even Locke confounds in one sweeping censure the Aristotelic Theory, with the absurd misapplications of it in later years. His objection to the science, as unserviceable in the discovery of truth, which has of late been often ignorantly repeated, while it holds good in reference to many misnamed logicians, indicates that, with regard to the true nature of the science itself, he had no clearer notions than they had, of the proper province of Logic, viz. Fea- soning; and of the distinct character of that operation from the ob- servations and experiments which are essential to the study of nature. *' An error apparently different, but substantially the same, per- vades the treatises of Dr. Watts, and other modern* writers on the subject. Perceiving the inadequacy of the syllogistic theory to the vast purposes to which others had attempted to apply it, he still craved after the attainment of some equally comprehensive and all-powerful system, which he accordingly attempted to con- struct, under the title of " The Bight Use of JReason,'* which was to be a method of invigorating and properly directing all the powers of the mind: a most magnificent object indeed, but one which not only does not fall under the province of Logic, but cannot be ac- complished by any one science or system that can even be con- ceived to exist. The attempt to comprehend so wide a field, is no extension of science, but a mere verbal generalization, which leads only to vague and barren declamation. In every pursuit the more precise and definite our object, the more likely we are to attain to some valuable result ; if, like the Platonists, who sought after the tivTxya.^ov, OT the abstract idea of good, we pursue some specious but ill-defined scheme of universal knowledge, we shall lose the substance while grasping at a shadow, and bewilder ourselves in empty generalities. " Complaints have also been made that Logic leaves untouched the greatest difficulties, and those which are the sources of the chief errors in reasoning, viz. the ambiguity or indistinctness of Terms, and the doubts respecting the degrees of evidence in va- * From this charge, a small work, entitled, " A Compendium of Logic," printed at London about 1780, is entirely free. PREFACE. 19 rious Propositions : an objection which is not to be removed by any such attempt as that of Dr. Watts to lay down " rules for form- ing clear ideas, and or guiding the judgment," but by replying that no art is to be censured for not teaching more than falls within its province, and indeed more than can be taught by any conceivable art. Such a system of universal knowledge as should instruct us in the full meaning or meanings of every term, and the truth or falsity, certainty or uncertainty, of every proposition, thus super- seding all other studies, it is most unphilosophical to expect or imagine. And to find fault with Logic for not performing this, is as if one should object to the science of Optics for not giving sight to the blind ; or as if, like the man of whom Warburton tells a story in his Div. Leg. one should complain of a reading-glass, for being of no service to a person who had never learned to read, *' In fact the difficulties and errors alluded to are not in the pro- cess of Reasoning itself which alone is the appropriate province of Logic, but in the subject-matter about which it is employed. This process will have been correctly conducted, if it has conformed to the logical rules, which preclude the possibility of any error creep- ing in between the principles from which we are arguing, and the conclusions we deduce from them. But still that conclusion may be false, if the principles we start from are so. In like manner, no arithmetical skill will secure a correct result to a calculation unless the data are correct from which we calculate : nor does any one on that account undervalue arithmetic ; and yet the objection against Logic rests on no better foundation. " There is in fact a striking analogy in this respect between the two sciences. All numbers, which are the subject of arithmetic, must be numbers of some things, whether coins, persons, mea- sures, or any thing else ^ but to introduce into the science any no- tice of the things respecting which calculations are made, would be evidently irrelevant, and would destroy its scientific character : we proceed, therefore, with arbitrary signs respecting numbers in the abstract. So also does Logic pronounce on the validity of a regularly constructed argument, equally well, though arbitrary symbols may have been substituted for the terms ; and consequent- ly, without any regard to the things signified by those terms. And the possibility of doing this, though the employment of such- arbi- trary symbols has been absurdly objected to, even by writers who understood not only arithmetic but also Algebra, is a proof of the strictly scientific character of the system. But many professed lo- gical writers, not attending to the circumstances which have been just mentioned, have wandered into disquisitions on various branches of knowledge ; disquisitions which must evidently be as boundless as human knowledge itself, since there is no subject in which Reasoning is not employed, and to which, consequently, Logic may not be applied. The error lies in regarding every thing as the proper province of Logic, to which it is applicable, A si- 20 PREFACE. , milar error is complained of by Aristotle, as having taken place with respect to Rhetoric ; of which, indeed, we find specimens in the arguments of several of the interlocutors in Cic de Oratore^ It would appear from the numerous treatises on Logic to which we have adverted, that the majority of them have been written for the adult reader exclusively, or for the advanced student at the University or College ; without the consideration on the part of the author, how much might be done, consistently with every other design, through the medium of method, arrangement, and all the advantages derivable from typographic distinction, further to facili- tate and render more general, the acquisition of a science whose importance is co-extensive with every interest existing in society. In numerous schools and respectable seminaries, it is no uncom- mon thing to find boys of fourteen or fifteen years of age, that have creditably passed through several of the first books of Eu- clid, and the more difficult parts of algebra; and in a very reputa- ble academy* in this city, several young ladies of a similar age, have with much benefit to themselves and credit to their instruc- tor, successfully studied Euclid, Algebra, Fergus's Nat. Philo- sophy, and Butler's Analogy. Now we would ask, what i& there in Logic more difficult, than in any of the sciences and works just mentioned? If there be any difficulty, it is not in the art itself certainly, but it may exist in the obscure and in- judicious manner of exhibiting it. Every art has its definitions, axioms, rules, and a few technicalities peculiar to itself, but these once learned, and their use by a little practice become familiar, the difficulty is over, the rest is a pleasure, a and permanent advantage. In addition to every other reason calculated to render a science- less generally studied, is the want of proper method and judicious arrangement. In every treatise we find matter of principal, se- condary and remote importance. A work with the whole of this- blended indiscriminately, is at once forbidding, inconvenient in the business of tuition, and can never be used as a book of reference A reader to whom a work of this description is presented, though his design is only to learn the general scope and intention of the author, has only one alternative ; that is to read the whole through, whether the whole, in his case, be necessary or not. Very pos- sibly, on first opening the book,, his object might be, particularly if his time be not very ample, to discover merely what are the leading points, or what has the first claim to his attention ; but if this be mixed up, without distinction, in the general mass, and he a learn- er, he is supposed neither to have the discrimination nor the leisure to make this selection for himself; and the consequence is, either that he closes the book in discouragement,, or has the fDrtitude patiently to wade through matter of first, second and third rate im^ portance, and after a dozen readings of this kind, the cloud proba- * Special reference is made: tft the semiaary of Rev. C. H. Alden. PREFACE. 21 biy remains, and his memory cannot be refreshed by easy and ready reference. The work, therefore, is finally abandoned, not because its subject had no intrinsic merit, but because its author never anticipated the peculiar exigencies of the learner, nor knew how to adapt the arrangement to the circumstances of those whose time is limited. Whoever became accurately acquainted with the French by toiling through the 540 octavo pages of Chambaud's Grammar, where Rule^ Exception, Illustration, Example, lie- mark, Exercise and Note are crowded into one chaos ? Or what mere learner has the power to separate so much ore from the more precious metal ? The mere want of judicious method alone, has done more to disserve the cause of Education, to impede the teach- er and discourage the learner, than is commonly imagined. Since we cannot perceive any peculiar difficulty in the science or art of Logic itself, at least, certainly nothing greater than what is implied in learning the simple art of English Grammar, it remains only to remove whatever prejudices may have arisen from the mis- representations of those who never understood the science them- selves, or the obscurities of others, who, in accommodation to the learner or the man of business, never knew how to exhibit it. By the latter, a man of business, we are addressed. He says, " what is Logic, its nature and object? To read that book, would not suit me : I have look'd at its pages in vain : I have not time : I want something to strike the eye at once. Show me the picture, the full length portrait : if there be a cloud, or dust, remove it : let me see not only it at one look, but its shape, features, color, &c.: and then, by a few glances, by looking at a picture, I read a whole book, an entire volume : my first intention is answered : and if I am satisfied I will return, and view the picture again, or many times, till the picture is no longer on canvass only, but painted on my eye, my memory, my understanding ; and what I know, I can surely ex- plain to others. But if you cannot treat me in this way ; if you hand me that heavy prosing volume, where instead of a single line visible or distinct, or anything like the ready picture, all lines and all colors are put on with one brush, for such a painter's pi I have no time, business calls, and though I was ' almost persuaded' to become a logician, I shall be compelled to remain ' altogether,' what I was, unacquainted with the nature and design of logic." Logic is certainly an essential part of a liberal education, and de- sirable for all who wonld possess a well cultivated mind. And if, as is certainly the fact, there is less difficulty in it, than there is in arithmetic, and the impediments to a clear view, and ready attain- ment of it may be removed, as we have laboured to effect in this volume, we see no reason why it should not become, to the advan- tage and credit of this nation, a general study : no reason why, that all possessing any native talent, or those at least that are com- petent to attend to the study of arithmetic or grammar, should not learn it ; nor any reason why it could not with advantage be intro- 22 PREFACE. duced into the schools as well as into the colleges : that all, not only the Divine, the Barrister, the Senator, the Politician, the Lec- turer, the Author, and the Teacher, who would eminently find their account therein, should not thorougly understand it ; but also the merchant, the tradesman, and the mechanic, many of whom are men of considerable talent, and know not yet what social or civil duties they may have to fulfil ; and in short, all who are aware that the mind is an endowment so much more valuable than the body, and that it is infinitely more worthy of the ornaments of every mental excellency and acquisition, than the latter can be of the finest and most costly apparel. To promote this object, and furnish every facility that students of every class, and persons in every situation can require, the fol- lowing arrangement will be found to prevail throughout the present volume. 1st. The definitions and rules and whatever, in the de- velopment of the science, calls for principal attention, will be dis- tinguished on the page from the illustrations, notes and examples ; and the former, for the convenience of those who wish to impress them on the memory, will be expressed with the utmost brevity, and numbered throughout for the purpose of reference. 2dly. The whole work will be divided into chapters, and each chapter will close with an interrogatory exercise on the subjects it explains, ac- companied with apposite examples to evince that the pupil not only remembers but also understands the rule or definition he recites. This brings again under consideration and inquiry, and that in a diff"erent or inverse manner, every subject that was more directly treated by the chapter to which it refers. The very nature of a recapitulatory exercise is to require, at some convenient stage of the student's progress, a repetition of what he has already learned, in order to prove that he retains his past acquisitions. It is of the nature of those cross examinations, that prevail in our courts of judicature, by which the evidence that before appeared plausible or correct, often proves to be fallacious. A similar necessity obtains in the classical department: a boy must be in the habit of both read- ing and writing Latin before he can be proficient. In reading he attends chiefly to the sense of his author ; but in writing, he be- comes solicitous about the mood, tense, case and concord ; and thus what the first method left undone, is effected by the second. 3dly. To furnish every accommodation that can be requisite, a small key to the problems or examples proposed for solution, will be given at the end of the volume. 4thly. A synopsis, or 7nemorial view of all the principal points of the science, will be furnished for practical purposes, in its proper place. 5thly. And additional ex-. ercises will also be added at the end of the work, consisting either of examples not in syllogistic form, proposed for reduction into regular order ; or of apparent syllogisms for the detection of the fallacies they contain. 6thly. And to the work will also be added, for the convenience of all engaged in teaching, exam.ples^ of logical parsing with suitable parsing exercises. PREFACE. 23 Throughout the whole of this work, it has been the endeavor of the author to afford every facility for the purpose of either private or public instruction. In the latter, or for young persons, it will be proper, 1st. That the learner should every evening, commit to memory and study, two or more, according to his capacity, of the definitions, axioms or rules, contained in the treatise, and repeat them on the following morning. 2dly. And at the end of every section, that he should repeat the whole of that section, by learning it the second time, in order that it may be more completely infixed in his memory. 3dly. Before he proceeds to a higher class, it is re- commended, that his proficiency should be examined and his recol- lection confirmed, by the interrogatory exercise at the close of the chapter. 4thly. It is peculiar to this volume to be arranged for the purpose of enabling the tutor to convene together, once a week, all his pupils learning the art, in classes or otherwise, for the pur- pose of collective examination, and mutual argument or dispu- tation, on subjects or syllogisms that might be selected for the purpose, at the discretion of the tutor. It was the intention of the present writer to notice particularly the several authors to whom he is, in the production of this volume, more or less indebted. But in a work, the original intention of which was to unite as far as possible the various excellencies of every treatise of eminence, quotations would naturally abound. In such cases it is usually deemed sufficient to make the acknowledgment once for all. The frequent alterations made in the language, and the incon- venience of crowding the page with names, tend to justify the ex* elusion of perpetual reference. To concentrate every useful illus- tration and improvement is a duty indispensably incumbent on every author. We infer the propriety from its evident advantage, the sanc- tion from universal custom, and the warrant from Seneca, who ob- serves, " we ought to imitate the bees, that wander up and down, and taste the flowers eligible for the production of honey. What they collect, with a certain mixture and peculiar property of their own, they change into its sweetness. These bees we ought to imitate, and to analyze whatever we from various reading treasure up. Then the care and energy of our own genius being added, to transfuse these various extracts into one flavor. So that even if it should appear, from whence it had been taken, it may, however, appear, something else than those from whence it was taken."* * " Apes debemus imitari, quae vagantur, et flores ad mel faciendum idoneos carpunt : et quae collegerunt, in hunc saporem mixtura quadam et proprietate spiritus sui mutant, nosque has apes deberaus imitari, et qusecunqiie ex diversa letione congessimus, separate, Beinde adhibita ingenii nostri cura et facultate, in unum saporem varia ilia libamenta confundere ut, etiam si apparuerit unde sumptum sit, aliud tamen esse, quam unde sumptum est, appareat."— ^e«tfca. ANALYSIS OF THE WORK. For p. read page ; for a. article ; and for n. read note. p. lKTEODtJCTIO]!f, - - - 25 Importance of the science, p. 27 ; analysis of argument, p. 28 ; pro- position, p. 29 ; subject and predicate, p. 30 ; major, minor and mid- dle terms, p. 30 ; major and minor premiss and conclusion, p. 31 ; Aristotle's general law, p. 31 ; mistakes of certain writers on this subject, p. 31, and seq. ; method of finding the middle term, p. 35 ; distribution of terms, p. 35 and seq. : the principal kinds of proposi- tions, p. 38 ; rule for distribution, p. 39 and 41 ; how to mark terms distributed, p. 41 ; irregular arguments examined, p. 42 and seq. PART I. ON TERMS, &c. PKELiMiJfARx Chapter; on the operations of the mind, &c. - - 49 Apprehension, a. 2 ; judgment, a. 3 ; argumentation, a. 4 ; language, a. 5 ; definition of logic, a. 7 ; its province, a. 7, n. 1, and seq. Chapter I. On terms simply, ...----54 A term, a. 8 ; singular, a. 9 ; universal, a. 10 ; relative, a. 11 ; abso- lute, a. 12; positive, a. 13 ; privative, a. 14; negative, a. 15 ; ab- stract, a. 16 ; concrete, a. 17; indefinite, a. 18 ; definite, a. 19. Chapter II. On the opposition of terms. ^^ Definition, a. 20; consistent terms, a. 21 ; opposite terms, a. 22; opposition of terms fourfold, a. 23 ; relative opposition, a. 24 ; con- trary opposition, a. 25 ; privative opposition, a. 26 ; contradictory opposition, a. 27. Chapter III. On the generalization of terms, and on terms predicable, 61 Generalization, a. 28 ; comprehension of terms, a. 28, n. 6 ; exten- sion of terms, a. 28, n. 7 ; terms predicable, a. 29 and 30 ; genus, a. 31 ; species, a. 32; essential difference, a, 33 ; property, a. 34; ac- cident, a. 35; highest genus or subaltern, a. 36 to 38 ; additional notes on predicables, p. 65 and seq. Chapter IV. On the division and definition of terms, - - 68 Division of a universal term, a. 40 ; rules of division, a. 41 ; defini- tion of terms, a. 42 ; nominal definition, a. 43 ; real definition, a. 44 ; accidental definition, a. 45 ; essential definition, a. 46 ; physical definition, a. 47 ; logical definition, a. 48 ; rules of definition, a. 49. PART II. ON PROPOSITIONS. Chapter I. On the nature and parts of a proposition, - - 76 Definition, a. 51 ; matter of a proposition, a. 52 and a. 58 ; its ex- tremes, a. 56; its parts, a. 53; subject, a. 54; predicate, a. 5&; copula, a. 57. Chapter II. On the principal kinds of propositions, - - - 80 Propositions, 1st, absolute, a. 60 ; 2d, hypothetical, a. 61 ; quality of propositions, a. 62 ; quantity of propositions, a. 63 ; propositions, aflirmative, a. 62, n. 1 ; negative, a. n. 2 ; universal, a. 64 ; par- 326 ANALYSIS OF THE WORK. P- licular, a. 65 ; universal affirmative, a. 66 ; universal negative, a. 67 ; particular affirmative, a. 68 ; particular negative, a. 69 ; memo- rial symbols, a. 70; singular propositions, a. 72 ; indefinite proposi- tions, a. 73 ; additional remarks on universals, p. 84. Chapteh III. On the secondary kinds of propositions, - - 88 Propositions, pure or simple, a. 74 ; modal, a. 75 ; complex, a. 76 ; compound, a. 77 ; copulative, a. 78 ; discretive, a. 79 ; disjunctive, a. 80 ; conditional, a. 81 ; causal, a. 83 ; relative, a. 83 ; reciprocal, a. 83, n. 3 ; identical, a. 83, n. 4. Chapter IV. On the distribiUion of the terms of a proposition, - 96 A term when said to be distributed, a. 84 ; inquiry of distribution implies comprehension or extension, or both, a. 84, and notes; rules of distribution, a. 84 or 85 ; necessary, impossible or contingent matter of a proposition, a. 86 ; rules as to indefinite and singular proposi- tions, a. 87 to 89. Chapter V. Section I. On the opposition of propositions, - - 106 Opposition of propositions defined, a. 90 ; kinds of opposition, a. 92 and 93; schemes of opposition, p. 108 to 110; rules of opposi- tion, a: 94; summary rules of opposition, a. 95 and 96 ; subalterna- tion, a. 96, notes. Section II. On the conversion of propositions, - - - - 114 Conversion of propositions defined, a. 97 ; original and converse pro- position, a. 98 ; inferential conversion, a. 99 ; hmits of conversion, a. 100 and seq. ; examples of inferential conversion, a. 100, n. 3 and seq. ; simple conversion, a. 102; particular conversion, a. 103; con- version by negation, a. 103, notes; summary rules of conversion, a. 104. ON evidence. Chapter VI. On the evidence necessary in the affirmation or negation of a proposition, - - - - • - -- - 123 I*articulars implied by evidence, p. 123 ; what testifies, a. 105 ; TESTIMONY, a. 106 ; necessity of the exercise of the faculties of per- ception, a. 105, n. 7 and seq.; evidence, a. 107 ; eaculties op PERCEIVING EVIDENCE, 3.108; sensation, a. 108, n. 2 and seq. ; Cartesian philosophy, Locke, Berkeley, and Hume, a. 108, n.-4 and seq.; consequences of scepticism, p. 133 and seq.; conscio7isness,\). 134; conception, ibid. ; imagination, Tp. 135; attention, ibid.; as- sociation of ideas, p. 136; memory, ibid; comparing, ibid ; ab' straction, Tp. 137; analysis, p. 140; passions, p. 141; assent, a. 109; CONVICTION, a. 110 ; opinion, p. 147 ; certainty, ibid ; scale of assent, p. 148; coNSEatiENCEs or conviction, a. Ill; scepti- cism of Pyrrho, p. 152 ; writings of Buffier, Keid, Butler, Beattie, Campbell, Paley, and Stewart, p. 152 and seq. Chapter VII. Ori intuitive evidence, - - - -- -155 Definition of intuitive evidence, a. 133 ; its kinds, a. 133, n. 1 ; in- tuitive evidence not always comparison, p. 157 and seq. ; evidence of sensation, a. 114; evidence of consciousness, a. 115; evidence of memory, a. 116; evidence of axioms, a. 117; sceptic's millenni- um, a. 117, n. 4. Chapter VIII. On dedtictive evidence, - . - - - 168 Deductive evidence defined, a. 118; founded on intuitive, p. 168; examples, p. 169 to 173 ; its kinds, a. 119 ; mathematical evidence, ANALYSIS OF THE WORK. 327 p. a. 120 ; moral evidence, a. 121 ; its evidence not inferior to mathe- matical, a. 121 and seq[. ; protest against the term "probable evi- dence," p. 178 and seq. ; probable testimony, a. 122; human testi- mony, a. 122, n. 2. PART III. ON ARGUMENTATION. Section I. On induction, - - - - - - - -183 Definition of induction, a. 123 ; discursive induction, a. 124; illus- tration, a. 124, notes; argumentative induction, a. 125;, illustra- tions, a. 125, notes; contrast between induction and syllogism, p. 187 and seq. Section II. 0?i analogy, 190 Definition, a. 126 ; illustrations, a. 126, notes ; cases wherein analo- gy is proper, a. 126, n. 7 and seq. ; Butler's Analogy, a. 126, n. 9 ; its use in inference from things known having a resemblance to things less known, a, 126, n. 10 and seq. Sectioin- III. On argume?iis. Chapter I. On the nature, parts and rules of syllogism, - - 197 A premiss, a. 127; argument, a. 128; the three terms, major, mi- nor and middle of a syllogism, a. 129 and 130; properties of the middle term, a. 131 and notes ; of the minor, a. 132 ; the three pro- positions of one argument, a. 133; their office, a. 134 ; Aristotle's law, a. 135 ; its converse, a. 136 ; perfect syllogism, a. 137 ; gene- ral principles, a. 138 and 139 ; rules of syllogism, a. 140 and seq.; analysis of syllogism, p. 208. Chapteu II. On the moods and figures of syllogism, - - - 210 Introductory remarks, p. 210 and seq. ; illustration of the general law of syllogism by a diagram, p. 212 ; mood, a. 145 ; figure of a syllogism, a. 146; the first figure, a. 147; the second and third figures, a. 148 ; the fourth figure, a. 149 ; memorial line for figures, a. 151 ; the same for moods, a. 152 ; examples of the four figures, p. 219 and seq. Chapter III. On the reduction of syllogism, - . . _ 222 Definition, a. 153; kinds of reduction, a. 154; explanation of the memorial lines for reduction, a. 154 and notes; rule for reduction, a. 155 ; examples of reduction, p. 224 and seq. ; reduction ad im- possible, a. 157, Chapter IV. On hypothetical syllogisms, 230 Definition, p. 230 ; conditional syllogism, a. 159; its parts, a. 160 ; rules, a. 161 ; constructive and destructive hypotheticals, a. 163 ; dis- junctive syllogisms, a. 165 ; dilemma, a. 167; reduction of hypo- theticals, a. 168. Chapter V. On the enthymeme, sorites, epichirema, &c. - - 238 The enthymeme, a. 169 ; sorites, a. 170; the epichirema, a. 171 ; reasoning a priori, a posteriori, &c. p. 241 ; directand indirect, eJu// argumentum ad hominem — ad verecundiam — ad ignorantiam — ad populum — ad judicium, &c. p. 242. Chapter VI. General remarks on argumentSj - - - . 243 Identity of all arguments when complete or reduced to regular form with the syllogism, p. 243 and seq. ; contrast between the enthyme- me and syllogism, p, 246 and seq. ; privilege of man not only as a 328 ANALYSIS OF THE WORK. rational, but as a reasoning being, p. 247 and seq. ; identity of all reasoning, p. 250 and seq. ; the general law, p. 253 and seq. ; truth single and indivisible, and reasoning when correct the same, p. 253 and seq. ; progressive advancement of rationality by reasoning, p. 256 and seq. ; necessity of reduction into syllogistic form to detect fallacy, p. 257 and seq. ; one act of law is one act of reasoning, or one syllogism, p. 261 and seq.; objections founded on misconcep- tion answered, p. 262 and seq. Chapteh VII. On fallacies, - 266 Definition, a. 172 ; limits, a. 173 ; possibility of excluding fallacy, when the truth of the premises is known, a. 173, notes; special rules for the syllogisms of each figure, a. 174 and seq. ; Dr. Whate- ly's table of fallacies, p. 273 ; general analysis of fallacies, a. 180. Gr.xrs I. Fallacy from ambiguity in one term, ... 274 Species 1. The fallacy of similar expression, a. 182 ; species 2, fal- lacy of interrogation, a. 183 ; species 3, fallacy of equivocation, a. 184 ; species 4, fallacy of division and composition, a. 185 ; species 5, fallacy of the accident, a. 186. Genus II. Fallacy from a term imdistributed, ... 2S0 Species 1, fallacy from an undistributed middle term, a. 187 and seq. ; species 2, fallacy from illicit process, ibid. Gk>"us III. Fallacy from improper premises^ .... 282 Species \. Fallacy of begging the question, . . . - 282 Variety 1, arguing by what is not granted, a. 189, notes; variety 2, arguing from a synonymous word, ibid ; variety 3, from some- thing equally unknown, 26zV/; variety 4, from what is more un- known, ibid ; variety 5, arguing in a circle, a. 189, n. 7 and 8. Species 2. Fallacy of undue a$su7nptio?i, ... - 283 Variety 1, assigning a false cause, a. 190, n. 2 ; variety 2, substitu- tion of a false premiss, a. 190, n. 3; variety 3, of partial reference, a. 190, n. 4 ; variety 4, combination with a mistake of the question, a. 190, n. 5 ; variety 5, infering a greater from a less probability, a. 190, n. 6. Species 3. Fallacy of mistaking the question, .... 285 Variety 1, ignorance of the question, a. 194. n. «4 ; variety 2, wilful mistake of the question, a. 194, n. 5 ; variety 3, combination with begging the question, a. 194, n. 6 ; variety 4, by appeal to the pas- sions, a. 194, n. 9 ; variety 5, fallacy of shifting ground, a. 194, n. 10 ; variety 6, of partial objections, a. 194, n, 11 ; variety 7, of un- fair representation, a. 194, n. 13 ; summary of fallacies, p. 290; the possibilities of deception numerically illustrated, p. 291. APPENDIX. Section I. Synopsis of Logic, Section II. Metaphysical, moral and mathematical reasonin Section III. Rules of interpretation, .... Section IV. Rules of controversy, - . . Section V. Rules of method. Treating on a simple theme, p. 302 ; on problem, p. 304 Section VI. Logical parsing, with examples. Section VIII. Syllogistic exercises. 293 295 298 300 301 311 317 Logical analysis applied to the first part of Paley's Evidences, - 317 ANALYTICAL INTRODUCTION. Whether the Analytic or Synthetic mode of communica- ting instruction, at least for initiatory purposes, is the more eligible, is a question that may frequently demand the consi- deration of those on whom that important duty devolves. The former mode presents a whole subject, or, at least, as much of it as is essential to the purpose ; and after the necessary re- marks on its nature and object as a whole, proceeds to de- velope that nature, and to point out how that object, through the proper connexion, is ultimately acquired, by a methodical and judicious analysis and dissection of the whole subject into its component parts and subdivisions. The Synthetic method, on the contrary, begins with those several subdivisions and parts, pointing out the particular use of each and its de- pendancy on another, until from the smaller we arrive at the larger divisions, and from these to the whole, and to the ex- emplification of its use and service in the business of private and social life. On this plan it is sometimes necessary that the patience of the learner should be a little exercised, whilst he is attending to the mere elements, of the ultimate advantage of which he can form no conception, until he arrive at that stage of the science, where he can perceive all that benefit and service it may be of to himself and others, which before he could by no means appreciate. To obviate, however, this temporary inconvenience, and to embrace every advantage cirising from the Synthetic process, otherwise the more perfect of the two, lecturers about to deliver an entire course on any science, frequently preface the series with an opening or introductory lecture, in which the Analytic mode, the more preferable for an initiatory purpose, is first adopted j that is 26 INTRODUCTION. the whole subject, or as much of it as is possible, is presented, and afterwards its parts are consecutively developed. Atten- tion being thus secured, the lecturer is afterwards at liberty to employ the Synthetic or any other mode more eligible for his purpose. The beautiful introduction of Dr. Paley to his Natural Theology is a subject of frequent remark. We have, as it were, at once a picture before the imagination. We see an Indian — one altogether unacquainted with the arts and pro- ductions of civilized life — a watch, what he had never seen before, and that too in movement, implying pre-existent de- sign, is lying on the ground before him ! And he, as might be expected, is in a state of wonder and astonishment. At what ? At the watch as a whole, certainly, and that whole in a state of successful and instructive operation. Now, on the contra- ry, if the watch, instead of being there in its whole and en- tire state, in which it exemplified utility and design, had been previously taken to pieces and disconnected, exemplifying neither motion nor design in its construction, the state of his surprise or excitement would have been very different, his at- tention wbuld have been withdrawn and transferred to his bow, his arrows, and the chase, and he would have remained an Indian still. For reasons, therefore, now explained, we shall devote this introductory chapter to the analytic explanation of Logic. The necessary consequence not only of the intellectual cha- racter of man, but of the singular peculiarity of the situation and circumstances in which he is placed ; — placed not only before one or many watches, but surrounded by systems, small and great, above, below, and on every hand, in endless train and countless succession, is, that he is a reasoning being, one necessarily employed in successive argumentation. Man rea- sons, argues, necessarily, unavoidably, not only as it refers to his own mind, but also to the numberless characters with whom he is or may be engaged. But that man necessarily reasons, and reasons always rightly, are as much two things, as that watches go, and go always rightly. Were the movements of jOur reasoning as ordinarily correct as those of the chronome- INTRODUCTION. 27 ter, there would, comparatively, be little need of Logic ; but the uniform testimony of history and common experience de- clare that, in this case, there are many watches out of repair, and that, therefore, not only a regulator, but all the regulation we can attain, is as well for the benefit of the individual, as for that of society at large, imperatively required. If man is, and has been always reasoning, he has been rea- soning now for near six thousand years. And this fact alone presents a serious and very important inquiry. We perceive in a moment a defect of a very alarming nature ; for except as to the arts, and to the exact sciences, and to certain con- cerns of a mercenary character, to how little purpose, as to all the moral and intellectual excellencies of which we are ca- pable, have thousands of our fellow men, in this and every preceding age, reasoned ! and how little has every succeed- ing generation learned from the foibles of all that have pre- ceded it ! Had all this great defect been supplied, from age to age, hy men not only reasoning, but reasoning accurately, and on subjects most important to themselves, we should not to this day, whether in governments or in the domestic circle, have inherited, to so lamentable an extent, all the failings of our fathers. Is this then a proof that common sense, in many cases, a sense too common, is a sufficient guide ? It will not be inferred by any reflecting character, that we mean by this to intimate that the mere art of Logic, however excellent in its place, could, without its practical applica- tion, adequately supply a defect so alarming in extent as the one to which we have just alluded. Neither Logic merely in the book, nor Logic unapplied to subjects that essentially con- cern us, nor without carrying out into practice the precepts, that we may, if we will, correctly deduce from proper pre- mises, will do any thing. Nevertheless, it cannot be denied that the art of Logic, and the principles it affords, rightly under- stood, correctly applied, and conscientiously obeyed, would, though not the only regulator, have a powerful influence on the human mind, and a more extensive and happier influence in every department of society, than it is, at present, possible to appreciate. 28 INTRODUCTION. Neither do we intend to deny that men can reason without the art of Logic, on some subjects correctly, though on others the reasoning is blended with fallacy, which they themselves are unable to detect. But they are liable also, as every day's experience testifies, to be imposed on by the sophisticated rea- sonings of others, without being able to expose their illogi- cal conclusions: or to anticipate precisely on what ground an. opponent may meet an argument apparently correct and com- plete in itself. Every argument terminates with a conclusion relative to which our inquiries have been directed. And every conclu- sion is deduced from two propositions, called premises. In an argument briefly expressed, though one of these premises is suppressed, it is nevertheless understood as admitted. That this is the fact becomes evident by supposing a denial of the sup- pressed premiss, which immediately invalidates the argument.. Suppose that one unfolding the vast volumes of nature, arrives by the inductive process, which we shall hereafter explain, at the conviction that " the world exhibits marks of design ;" the irresistible conclusion, in his own mind, from this is, that *^ therefore it must have had an intelligent authorP The whole argument in this state may be expressed in one com- pound proposition, which is the form in which it is called an Enthymeme, or an argument with one of the premises sup- pressed. In this state it stands thus: " The world exhibits marks of design ; therefore It must have had an intelligen^t author.'^ One inquiring, if this argument, as it is, is complete, will readily perceive, that if it be denied, that " Whatever exhi- bits m,ar7is of design must have had an intelligent author, ^^ that the affirmative of this proposition is necessary to the va- lidity of the argument. Thus then we have, by merely sup- plying the suppressed premiss, the complete Syllogism or ar- gument, as follows : — • *' Whatever exhibits marks of design must have had an intelligent author. " The world exhibits marks of design ; therefore The world must have had an intelligent author." It is evident, therefore^ that the Syllogism is not a peculiar INTRODUCTION. 29 kind of argument, but only a peculiar /or m, to which every argument may be reduced. Whilst the argument remains in the form of the Enthymeme, viz : " The world exhibits marks of design ; therefore It must have had an intelligent author," the atheist must accept one or the other of the two following alternatives : he must deny either, Ist, that the world does ex- hibit marks of design ; or 2dly, that it follows from thence that it had an intelligent author. In the former ease he denies the force of the expressed premiss ; in the latter, of the suppress- ed: if both be admitted, the conclusion properly connected with them, inevitably follows. By supplying the suppressed premiss, and reducing the whole to the Syllogistic form, the whole of the atheist's opposition must be met within the scope of the first proposition ; if he fail there, his cause is lost. We have now the whole syllogism before us, and are en- abled to discover something relative to the difference between a common argument, or enthymeme, and a complete argu- ment, or syllogism. But as syllogisms as well as enthyme- mes may be incorrectly as well as correctly constructed, we should be able, if we would be successful in argumentation, to take a syllogism to pieces, examine its component parts, dis- cover if a part is wanting, or there is one too many, and if the parts are properly connected. This is analysis, from which, prior to our attention to further explanation, we may derive much instruction. The first thing that will occur in our analysis of the regular syllogism is, that it consists of three propositions, the two for- mer of which, when regularly constructed, are the premises, and the last is the conclusion. By a proposition we are to understand, a sentence containing two terms, the subject and the predicate, whereof one is affirmed or denied of the other, as First Term. "= Second Term. r ^ -^ ^ r^f^ All rational animals are men. * The Copula is that verbal connection of the subject and predicate of a proposition, which affinns or denies the latter of the former.^ c2 30 BNTRODUCTIOK". And with equal facility we shall perceive the distinction be- tween the Subject and the Fredicate, or the two terms that must exist in every proposition, by remembering, that, the subject of a proposition is that term of which something is affirmed or denied and that the Predicate of a Proposition is that term which is affirmed or denied of its subject; as Subject. Predicate.. All rational animals are men. And lastly, by a term, we are to understand^ any word or words which may be the subject or predicate of a proposition : so in the above example, the word " men" is a term, and " ra- tional animals" is another, though that term consists of more words than one. If a syllogism then consists of three propositions, and each proposition of two terms, there must be six terms in the full extent, though not sia^ distinct terms, in every proposition ; as All thinking beings are spirits. 3 4 A -A The mind is a thinking being ; therefore 5 6 The mind is a spirit. But of these six, only three are distinct terms :■ to render this evident, we shall mark them again ; as, 3 All thinking beings are spirits. The mind is a thinking being j therefore 2 I 1^^ ^ r^\^ The mind is a spirit. And in a proper syllogism, it will be impossible to find any other term distinct from the three principal terms of the syl- logism ; which are tbe major, the minor, and the middle TERMS. The major term is the predicate of the conclusion ; in the above example "spirit," the minor term is the subject of the same conclusion^ viz: " mind ;" and the middle term is that with INTRODUCTION. 31 which each of the other terms are separately compared in the pre- mises ; as ** thinking beings." Middle Term. All thinking beings are spirits. The mind is a thinking being ; therefore Minor. Major. f ^ ^ r^A>-^ The mind is a spirit. The major term is commonly more comprehensive than the medium ; as the medium is than the minor. This, however, will be better explained hereafter. Knowing now these several ternls, and to which reference can at any time be made> we shall be able to attach the names given by logicians to each of the propositions respectively : we have to remember, that the major premiss is that which compares the major term with the middle term ; the minor pre?niss is that which compares the minor term with the middle term ; and the conclusion compares the minor term with the major ; as Middle Term. Major Term. f ^ ^ /'^A^ Major Premiss : All thinking beings are spirits. Minor Term. Middle Term. Minor Premiss : The mind is a thinking being ; therefore Minor Term. Major Term. f — -^ ^ rv-n Conclusion : The mind is a spirit. For the establishment of the general law for the regulation of the syllogism, we are indebted to Aristotle : it may be thus expressed. " Whatever is predicated, affirmed or denied, universally, of any class of things, may he predicated in like m,anner, affirmed or denied, of any thing comprehended in that class J'^ As a frequent reference to this principle will be found gene- rally serviceable, it should be well remembered. Relative to this general rule, Dr. Whately makes the following remarks : " It is not a little remarkable that some, otherwise judicious 32 INTRODUCTION. I writers, should have been so carried away by their zeal against that philosopher, as to speak with scorn and ridicule of this principle, on account of its obviousness and simplicity ; though they would probably perceive at once, in any other case, that it is the greatest triumph of philosphy to refer many, and seemingly very various phenomena to one, or a very few, sim- ple principles; and that the more simple and evident such a principle is, provided it be truly applicable to all the cases in question, the greater is its value and scientific beauty. If in- deed, any principle he regarded as not thus applicable, that is an objection to it of a different kind. Such an objection against JlristotWs dictiim, no one has ever attempted to es- tablish by any kind of proof. But it has often been taken for granted. It has been commonly supposed, without examina- tion, that the syllogism is a distinct kind of argumenty and that the rules of it accordingly do not apply, nor were intend- ed to apply, to all reasoning whatever. Under this misappre- hension. Dr. Campbell* labors with some ingenuity, and not without an air of plausibility, to show that every syllogism must be futile, because the premises virtually assert the con- clusion : little dreaming of course, that his objections, how- ever specious, lie against the process of reasoning itself universally ; and will therefore, of course, apply to those very arguments which he himself is adducing, " It is much more extraordinary to find another eminent authorf adopting expressly the very same objections, and yet distinctly admitting, within a few pages, the possibility of re- ducing every course of argument to a series of syllogisms. The same writer brings in an objection against the dictum of Aristotle, which it may be worth while to notice briefly, for the sake of setting in a clearer light the real character and object of that principle. Its application being, as has been seen, to a regular and conclusive syllogism, be supposes it intended to prove and make evident the conclusiveness of such a syllogism ; and remarks how unphilosophical it is to attempt giving a * Philosophy of Rhetoric. t Dugald Stewart : Philosophy, vol. ii. INTRODUCTION. 33 demonstration of a demonstration. And certainly the charge would be just, if we could imagine the logician's object to be, to increase the certainty of a conclusion which we are supposed to have already arrived at by the clear- est possible mode of proof. But it is very strange that such an idea should ever have occurred to one who had even the slightest tincture of natural philosophy, for it might as well be imagined that the design of a natural philoso- pher or chemist is to strengthen the testimony of our senses by a priori reasoning, and to convince us that a stone when thrown will fall to the ground, and that gunpowder will explode when fired ; because they show that according to their principle those phenomena must take place as they do. But it would be a mark of the grossest ignorance and stupidity not to be aware that their object is not to prove the existence of an individual phenomenon, which our eyes have witnessed, but, as the phrase is, to account for it, i. e. to show according to what general principle it takes place, and therefore eannot be otherwise ; to refer, in short, the individual case to a general law of nature. The object of Aristotle's dictum is precisely analogous : he had, doubtless, no thought of adding to the force of any individual syllogism ; his design was to point out the general principle on which that process is conducted which takes place in each syllogism. And as the laws of na- ture, as they are called, are in reality merely generalized facts, of which all the phenomena coming under them are only particular instances, so the proof drawn from Aristotle's dictum is not a distinct demonstration brought to confirm another demonstration, but is merely a generalized and abstract statement of all demonstrations whatever falling under that law ; and is, therefore, in fact the very demonstration which (mutatis mutandis) accommodated to the very subject-matter, is actually employed in each particular case. *^ It is a mistake, which might appear scarcely worthy of notice, had not so many writers fallen into it, to imagine that Aristotle, and other logicians, meant to propose that the form of unfolding arguments should universally supersede in argu- 34 INTRODUCTION. mentative discourses, the common forms of expression, Aris- totle has even been charged with inconsistency for not uni- formly doing so. As well might a chemist be charged with inconsistency for making use of any of the compound sub- stances whose quahties are already ascertained, without pre- viously analyzing on every occasion, and resolving them into their simple element. The chemist keeps by him his tests, and his method of analysis, to be employed when any substance is offered to his notice, the composition of which has not been determined, or in which adulteration is suspected. Now a fallacy may be aptly compared to some adulterated compound: it consists of an ingenious mixture of truth and falsehood, so entangled, so intimately blended, that the falsehood is, in the chemical phrase, held in solution: one drop of sound logic is that test which immediately disunites them, makes the foreign substance visible, and precipitates it to the bottom." B^ing now furnished with the regular form of the syllogism, its analysis into the parts of which it is composed, and the gene- ral law given by Aristotle, it will be proper to compare with that law the syllogism already quoted, viz: Whatever exhibits marks of design had an intelligent author. The world exhibits marks of design ; therefore The world had an intelligent author. " In the first of these premises, we find it assumed univer- sally of the class of things which exhibit marks of design, that they had an intelligent author ; and in the other premiss, the world is referred to that class as comprehended in it : now it is evident that whatever is said of the whole class, may be said of any thing comprehended in that class; so that we are thus authorized to say of the world, that it had an intelligent author." Now change this argument to one with a negative conclu- sion, viz : Nothing which exhibits marks af design could have been produced by chance. The world exhibits marks of design ; therefore The world could not have been produced by chance. The conformity of this syllogism to the general law as INTRODUCTION. 35 given by Aristotle, and the process of reasoning it institutes, are equally correct ; since it is evident that whatever is de- nied universally of any class may be denied of any thing that is comprehended in that class. Having obtained this introductory view relative to the na- ture and proper construction of a syllogism, and its conformity to the Arestotelean law, it will be further necessary to the more certain exclusion of fallacy, to attend to the following two rules, viz: I. The middle term must be distributed in one of the premises. II. The major term must be compared with the middle term in the m,aj or premiss ; and the minor term included in, NOT EXCLUDED FROM, t/ie middle term, in the minor pre- miss. The following mode of finding the middle term will be easy to the youthful student, viz : look for both the minor and the major terms in the conclusion ; for the minor, as we have already said, will be found to be the subject, and the major the predicate of the conclusion ; and underline them, as in the fol- lowing example. Whatever is an enemy to truths essential to our welfare, is an enemy to man. Prejudice is an enemy to truths essential to our welfare; therefore Prejudice is an enemy to man. In the conclusion we find two out of the three terms, 1st. The minor ("Prejudice;") and 2dly. The major term, ("an enemy to man.'') Now as there is only one term remaining that is distinct from these two, on looking over the syllogism, we perceive, that the term, " whatever is an enemy to truths essential to our v^elfare^^ is the only remaining term distinct from those we have already marked. As this is a very impor- tant term, draw two lines under it, and the syllogism with all its terms marked and properly distinguished will stand thus: Whatever is an enemy to truths essential to our welfare, is an enemy to man. Prejudice is an enemy to truths essential to our welfare; therefore Prejudice is an enemy to man. We shall give another example, as 36 INTRODUCTION. No neutral* salt retains the property of either of the simplesf composing it* The Nitrate of Potassa,^ is a neutral salt ; therefore The nitrate of Potassa, retains not the property of either of the simples com- posing it. We have already the minor and major terms marked ac- cording to previous directions. We have yet one remaining term, the medium or middle term to mark. On inspection we perceive no remaining term distinct, except ** neutral salt," found in the major premiss. The whole properly marked, and in a state proper for consideration when that middle term is distributed, according to the rule, will therefore stand thus : No neutral salt retains the property of either of the simples composing it. The nitrate of potassa is a neutral salt ; therefore The nitrate of potassa retains not the property of either of the simples com- posing it. Knowing therefore the middle term, it only remains to inquire, if according to rule, 1st. the middle term is distri- buted in one of the premises ; and 2dly, if the minor term is included in, and not excluded from the middle term in the minor premiss. We shall begin with the former, and inquire if the middle term is distributed ^ A term is said to be distributed when it is taken universally so as to stand for every thing it is capa- ble of being applied to ; and consequently undistributed when it stands for a portion only of the things signified by it. To understand this correctly is a very important point in the art of reasoning ; and as such demands explicit information. Our minute attention to it, therefore, requires no apology; we com* mence our inquiry with the first syllogism, in the state we last left it, viz: Whatever is an enemy to truths essential to our welfare, is an enemy to man* Prejudice is an enemy to truths essential to our welfare ; therefore Prejudice is an enemy to man. * A salt is not neutral if it retains an excess of either of its component parts, as those distinguished with the prefixes, super or sub ; as the super'' sulphate of alumina and potassa ; or the swA-carbonate of soda. These belong to distinct classes, which it is the province of chemistry to explain. •\ A simple, or simple body, is a component part of a compound body. t The nitrate of potassa, in common language, is called sait-pelre : it has neither the property of the nitric acid, nor of potassa, of which it is com* bined ; the one a powerful acid, the other a strong alkali. INTRODUGTIOKT. 37 Here the middle term is properly marked, and our inquiry- is reduced to this one question, is it distributed ? " taken uni- versally for every thing it is capable of being applied to V we answer, that it is impossible to conceive of any thing, that is an enemy to truths essential to our welfare, either by active- ly opposing them, or actively or negligently concealing them, but what is directly or indirectly, wilfully or negli- gently, an enemy to man. For first, nothing, not intellec- tual, can be said to be an enemy, though it may be an im- pediment; and secondly, that enmity to truths, can only be reduced to practice, either directly by opposition, or by con- cealment effected either actively and knowingly or negligently. If this be admitted, the middle term is distributed, and the major premiss stands undisputed, viz : <* Whatever is an enemy to truths essential to our welfare, is an enemy to man." The remaining question is, is the minor term included in, and not excluded from the middle term in the minor premiss ? In other words, does " Prejudice," the minor term, belong to the class described by the middle term ? is it included in, and not excluded from the class, " Whatever is an enemy to truths es- sential to our welfare ?" Because prejudice is here spoken of as one of the several things that are enemies to truths essen- tial to our welfare, it belongs therefore to the whole class de- scribed by " whatever is," &c. The middle term is therefore distributed, and the minor term included ; consequently the premises are correct, and the conclusion must inevitably fol- low. But why is the following Syllogism incorrect or not conclu- sive ] Food is necessary to life, Corn is food : therefore Corn is necessary to life.* Let us inquire here first, what is the proper meaning and * It will be sufficient here, once for all to observe, that we shall, whenever it shall be necessary for explanation, to mark the terms, preserve the distinc- tions already specified ; viz. the minor and major premises will be marked each with one, and the middle term with two lines drawn under them. D 58 INTRODUCTION. limit of the major premiss, which is, as it is here expressed, what logicians call "an indefinite proposition," or a kind of proposition that is sometimes universal, and sometimes j»ar/2- cular in the extent of its meaning, according to its obvious signification. The sense is here, not all kinds of food, nor every kind of food , is necessary to life, either of which would constitute a universal propositi on ; but some food or some kind of food is necessary to life ; i. e. a particular pro- position. Here then, "the rule has not been comphed with, since that which has been predicated not of the whole, but only of apart of the class, cannot be, on that ground, predi- cated of any other part of that class. This is at once not only the most important, but also the most difficult, if not the only difficult point in Logic. To re- move this difficulty, if such it be to any, no exertions of ours shall be omitted ; and with a little attention on the part of the learner, we do not despair of success. If this bridge be pass- ed, we have no other toll, worthy of the name of difficulty or exertion, to pay ! We have then to attend only to the follow- ing rules, which in a short time we shall make plain to every ohe. Propositions may, for the present purpose, be reduced to the following, viz. 1st, A universal affirmative; 2d, A universal negative; 3d, A particular affirmative ; 4th, A particular negative. Logicians mark these as follows : A universal affirmative by A, a universal negative by E, a particular affirmative by I, a particular negative by 0. To remember these symbols, which is of importance, the following memorial lines will assist us : Universally, A affirms and E denies. Particularly, I affirms and O denies. A universal affirmative is a proposition wherein the predi- cate is affirmed of the whole of the subject : its usual signs are, all, each, every, &c. ; or it may be an indefinite proposi- tion, understood, according to its sense, universally, as, INTRODUCTIOK. 39 All tyrants are unhappy, Every wicked man is miserable, Cuba is an island. **Cuba is an island/* though an indefinite proposition, yet in sense, it is equal to, " all Cuba is an island ;" the proposition is therefore a universal affirmative. A universal negative is a proposition v^rherein the predicate is denied of the v^^hole of the subject ; its usual signs are, 7io, none, neither^ &C., as, No discontented man is happy, None of the ancient philosophers understood Fluxions. Cuba is not a continent. A particular affirmative is a proposition wherein the predi- cate is affirmed of only part of the subject ; its usual signs are, some, several, many, most, few, &c., or it may be an indefinite proposition, understood according to its sense, par- ticularly ; Some metals are heavier than iron. Many parrots can talk. Few men are truly wise, Fowl lo xt.\j\jXjaaa,t. J- -i^ UA;>. The last proposition, " food is necessary to life, evidently does not mean, all food, or every kind of food, is necessary to life, but " some food is necessary to life ;" the proposition is therefore a particular affirmative. A particular negative is a proposition wherein the predicate is denied of only a part of the subject ; its negative sign is com- monly joined to the predicate ; as Some difficult things are not evils. Many parrots cannot talk. We shall now be able to understand the rule for the distri- bution of the middle term ; viz : All universal propositions distribute the subject, all ne- gative the predicate. If we apply this rule to the four following cases, and draw a line over every term, which according to it, we find distri- buted, they will stand thus. 40 INTRODUCTION. A. All birds are animals. E. No animal is a tree, I. Some food is necessary to life. 0. Some metals are not heavy. The first proposition is a universal affirmative, and therefore marked A. As it is a universal, according to the rule, the subject is distributed ; i. e. all kinds of birds, eagles, parrots, ravens, sparrows, &c., are animals ; since an animal is a being that has life, sensation and motion ; and all birds have these properties. The subject, therefore, is here distributed ; but not the predicate, for the term animal is applicable to millions of beings besides birds. No greater extension of the predicate is, therefore, here implied than is sufficient to embrace the subject, " birds." This will be immediately perceived by in- verting the proposition ; thus — All animals are birds. The falsity of this proves that the predicate of the original proposition, "all birds are animals," is not distributed. The next proposition, " No animal is a tree,^' is a universal negative, and therefore marked E. As it is a universal, ac- coz^lng to tho I (aIc;, tlic c3iAbjt<_t lb dlsii ibuted ; fur ijo ani- mal of any kind, is a tree. But as it is also a wc^a^iue pro- position, the predicate likewise, according to the same rule, is distributed. For the predicate not being restrained by a sub- ject, to which it is declared inapplicable, is taken in the whole of its extension, and consequently distributed. The third proposition, " some food is necessary to life," is a particular affirmative, and therefore marked I. It is not a universal; therefore according to the rule, the subject, <' some food," is not distributed. " Some" evidently implies a portion of what is called food ; the genus food, there- fore, is not distributed. And as the proposition is not a nega- tive, according to the rule, the predicate, "necessary to life implying other things beside food, or some food, is not distribu- ted. The proposition must consequently stand as we found it, without a mark signifying distribution, thus- Some food is necessary to life. The last proposition, "Some metals are not heavy," is a par- ticular negative, and marked accordingly O, It is not a univer- INTRODUCTION. 41 sal, consequently its subjects is not distributed : we do not mean^ any kind of metal, nor most kinds of metals, for most kind of me- tals are heavy. It is, however, a negative proposition, its predi- cate, " not heavy," is therefore distributed. For every thing implied in not heavy, that is, not heavier than water, is appli- able to these metals, viz. the metals Potassium, and So These may be both true together, but contrary. 5 O. Some vine is not a tree. 5 they can never be both false. Rules. — 1st. If a universal be true, ^ . _, • • X -N the particular will be true also : but fA. Every vine is a tree. -\ ^^ ^^^ ^^^ 2^^ .^ ^ .ticular Sub- j ^' ^^"'^ "^'"^ l^ ^ ^'^^- • be false, the universal must be false ; alterns. ^ -p ivr • •''^ f i '^"*' ^^^ °" *^® contrary. 3d, Sub- ti. ^o vme IS a tree. j propositions, whether univer- 10. Some vme is^not a tree. J i *^ ^- i .• , V.V. uixi A * ^ g^j ^^ particular, may sometimes be both true, and sometimes both false. fA. Every vine is a tree. "^ Contra- I ^' Some vine^is not a tree. | ^^^^^^ ^^^ ^^^^^ ^^ ^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^^^^ dictories. ^j ^ ^^ ^.^^ Ys ^ ^^^^^ palse at the same time. [I. Some vine is a tree. J (Art. 93.) Contrary opposition is that which is between two universals; subcontrary between two particulars; subaltern between two propositions agreeing in quality, but not in quantity; contradictory between two differing both in quantity and quality. 1. The truth or falsity of any proposition, its quantity and quality being known, must depend on the matter of it : and we must remember that, in necessary matter all affirmatives are true, and negatives false ; in impossible matter, all af- firmatives are false, and negatives true ; in contingent m^atter, all universals are false, and particulars true. 2. Thus, that " all islands, (or some islands) are surrounded with water," must be true, because the matter is necessary : but to say, "no island is surrounded with water," or "some islands are not surrounded with water," would be false, for the matter is impossible. Again ; " some islands are fertile," and ** some islands are not fertile," are both true, because the 108 SYNTHETICAL COMPENDIUM, matter is contingent, and the propositions particular : but put " all" or '' no," instead of sonne, as " all islands are fer- tile,'' or <' no island is fertile,'^ and the propositions are false, because the matter is contingent and the propositions uni- versal. 3. The whole doctrine of opposition is contained in the fol- lowing scheme ; where A, E, I and O denote the four propo- sitions, according to their quantity and quality/, which are marked t true, £ false, as the matter is n necessary^ i im'pos- sible, or c contingent. A- _ — contraries.— E nt ^ if cf •saTiBnuooqns 4. " By a careful study of this scheme, bearing in mind, and applying the above rule concerning matter, the learner will easily elicit all the maxims relating to opposition ; as that, in the subalterns, the truth of the particular follows from the truth of the universal ; and the falsity of the universal from the falsity of the particular ; that subalterns differ in quantity alone ; contraries, and also subcontraries, in quality alone ; contradictories, in both : and hence, that if any proposition is known to be true, we infer that its contradictory is false ; if false, its contradictory is true." — Whately. 5. To assist the student in the study of this scheme, we shall give three examples, of necessary, impossible and contingent ON THE OPPOSITION, &C. OF PROPOSITIONS. 109 matter, arranged after the same order, with the consequences true or false, expressed. 1st. NECESSARY MATTER. true. false. All birds are animals, (contraries) No bird is an animal. A X /E I / \0 Some birds are animals, (sub-contraries) Some birds are not animals. true. false. 2dly. IMPOSSIBLE MATTER. false. true. All birds are quadrupeds, (contraries) No bird is a quadruped. A\ . E Some birds are quadrupeds, (sub-contraries) Some birds are not quadrupeds false. true. 110 SYNTHETICAL COMPENDIUM. 3dly. CONTINGENT MATTER. false. ^ false. All islands are fertile, (contraries) No island is fertile. A\ /E 1/ \0 Some islands are fertile, (sub-contraries) Some islands are not fertile. true. true. (Art. 94.) The rules of opposition are, Rule 1. Contradictory propositions are always one true, and the other false. Rule 2. Four conditions are requisite to constitute a contra- diction, viz. to speak of the same thing, l,in the same sense; 2, in the same respect ; 3, with regard to the same third thing ; and 4, at the same time. If any of these be wanting, is and is not may agree. 1. For example, 1, An opinion is and is not faith. It is dead faith ; it is not living faith. 2, Zoilus is and is not red haired. He is with respect to his head ; he is not with re- spect to his beard. 3, Socrates is and is not long haired. He is in comparison of Scipio; he is not in comparison of Xe- nophon. 4, Solomon was and was not a good man. He was in his youth ; he was not in his middle age. Rule 3. Contrary propositions are never both true j but in contingent matter, they are both false. ON THE OPPOSITION, &C. OF PROPOSITIONS. Ill Rule 4. Sub-contraries are never both false ; but in contin- gent matter, they are both true. Rule 5. Subalterns are sometimes both true; sometimes both false ; and in contingent matter, the one is true and the other false. 1. In subalterns, the truth of the particular (which is call- ed the subalternate, follows from the truth of the universal, subalternans ;) and the falsity of the universal from the falsity of the particular. 2. Subalterns differ in quantity alone ; contraries and sub- contraries in quality alone; contradictories in both; and hence if any proposition is known to be true, we infer that its con- tradictory is false ; if false, the contradictory is true. 3. As frequent mention is made relative to agreement or disagreement in quality or quantity, it will be proper to ob- serve, that the relative positions of the four principal propo- sitions, A, E, I and O, in the above figure, with the connec- tives between any two of them, studied as they stand, or the whole figure frequently sketched by the learner, and well kept in mind, will, with the aid of the four following rules, be found very serviceable to the memory. Rule 6. Of propositions, affirmatives and negatives indicate the quality, universals and particulars the quantity. Rule 7. In quality f subalterns agree, contraries and sub- contraries disagree. Rule 8. In quantity, contraries and subcontraries agree, but subalterns disagree. Rule 9. In both, contradictories disagree. 4. The whole doctrine of opposition may, for every practi- cal purpose, be thus compressed, (Art. 95.) A and E are contraries; I and O subcontraries ; A and I, or E and subalterns; A and O, or E and I contra- dictories. (Art. 96.) In necessary matter, A and I are true, but E and O are false} in impossible, A and I are false, but E and O are true; in contingent matter, A and E are false, but I and are true. 112 SYNTHETICAL COMPENDIUM. 1. In addition to Art. 93, it may not be improper to add, that by " sub alternation,^' we are to understand " the deducing either a less universal proposition from a more universal; or a particular from a universal." Subalternation, therefore, is in compliance with Aristotle's dictum, by which we are authoriz- ed to predicate of that which is contained, whatever is predi- cated of that which contains it ; as of a species, whatever is predicated of its genus; of a class, whatever is predicated of its species; or of an individual, whatever is predicated of its class; or, in short, of a particular proposition, whatever is predicated of its universal ; as of I, whatever is predicated of its universal A ; or of O, whatever is predicated of its univer- sal E: which will hold good whenever the universals are true. In this subalternation^ the universal is called the sub alter nans ; the particular inferred from it, the sub alternate ; and the opposition between them, i. e. between A and I, or E and O, subalterns as 2. SUBALTERNS. J\recessary matter. Subalternans, A. All bircis are animals, ^ b th t Subalternate, I. Some bircis are animals, 5 ^ ' or 3 "^ S (-3 oi to fa t^ ^ ^. CD CD ETC ^^ fl 3 C ff. Subalternans, E. No bird is an animal, ^ b th f I p Subalternate, 0. Some birds are not animals, 5 ' Impossible matter. ^ o 2 S — >S2iW^er72aws, A. All birds are quadrupeds, ~) , ^t^ ^ i Subalternate, I. Some birds are quadrupeds, 3 ' or Subalteriians, E. No bird is a quadruped, Z b tli t Subalternate, 0. Some birds are not quadrupeds, 3 ^ ^' cr o OS » o C ?? o cr" Co7itingent matter. Subalternans, A. All islands are fertile, : false, I'gg'g'sSDS.^ Subalternate, I. Some islands are fertile, : true, | S B ^.«? — ^ Z". "* Subalternans, E. No island is fertile, : false, | ' ^ q g ^^ E, %• S^ib alternate, 0. Some islands are not fertile, : true, J 1^ E- S- °>. ? J 7 3. This exemplifies, (Art. 94, Rule 5) " Subalternans are sometimes both true, sometimes both false ; in contingent mat- ter the one is true, and the other false." 4. It will be useful to compare the three following remarks, relative to subalternation with Aristotle's dictum, viz : that " Whatever may he predicated universally of any class of things, may be predicated of any thing comprehended in that class. " ON THE OPPOSITION, &C. OF PROPOSITIONS. 113 1. The truth of a general or particular proposition may be inferred from the truth of the universal which contains it ; as Universal, A. All islands are surrounded by water, : true. Particular, I. Some islands are surrounded by water : true. " For if the predicate contains the whole extension of the subject, in its extension, it will likewise contain a part of it." 2. The truth of a particular does not infer the truth of a universal ; as Universal, A. All islands are fertile, : false. Particular, I. Some islands are fertile, : true. Very true : for Aristotle's dictum does not require any rea- soning from a particular to a universal. 3. The falsehood of a universal does not infer the falsehood of a particular ; as. Universal, A. All islands are fertile, : false. Particular, I. Some islands are fertile, : true. Equally true, for nothing can be infered from a false pre- miss : i. e. nothing can be illatively^ infered, as true, from that which \s false. The " Dictum^'' made no provision for any such consequence. 5. It will easily be perceived why the following are CONTRARIES. JVecessary matter, A. All islands are surrounded with water ; true. E. No island is surrounded with water ^ : false. Impossible matter. A. All islands are under water : false. E. No island is under water : true. Contingent matter, A. All islands are fertile ; false. E. No island is fertile : false. According to (Art. 94, Rule 3,) " Contraries are never both true, but, in contingent matter, they are both false." SUB-CONTRARIES. JVecessary matter. I. Some islands are surrounded with water : true. O. Some islands are not surrounded with water : false. * i. e-. Inferentially ; which in English we express by therefore. The lat- ter of the two following propositions is illative, because it is infered by there- fore, from the former : No virtuous man is a dishonest man ; therefore No dishonest man is a virtuous man. K 2 114 SYNTHETICAL COMPENDIUM. Impossible matter. I. Some islands are under water : false. 0. Some islands are not under water : true. Contingent matter. 1. Some islands are fertile : true. O. Some islands are not fertile : true. According to (Art. 94, Rule 4,) " Sub-contraries are never both false, but, in contingent niatter, they are both true." CONTRADICTORIES. JVecessary matter. A. All islands are surrounded with water : true. 0. Some islands are not surrounded with water : false. or, E. No island is surrounded with water : false. 1. Some islands are surrounded with water : true. Impossible matter. A. All islands are under water : false. O. Some islands are not under water : true. E. No island is under water I. Some islands are under water Contingent matter, A. All islands are fertile 0. Some islands are not fertile or, E. No island is fertile 1. Some islands are fertile According to (Art. 94, Rule I one true, and the other false." true, false. false, true. : false. : true. *' Contradictories are always SECTION II. On the conversion of propositions. The conversion, as well as the opposition of propositions, will be found chiefly useful in the reduction of syllogisms into correct mood and figure. (Art. 97.) A proposition is said to be converted, when its terms are transposed. ON THE OPPOSITION, &C, OF PROPOSITIONS. 115 1. i. e. When the subject is made the predicate, and the predicate the subject ; as, E. No unhappy man is a perfect Christian ; therefore E. No perfect Christian is an unhappy man. N. B. Both terms in each are distributed, (Art. 98.) The proposition to be convertedis the original; that into which it is converted, the converse ; as Original. E: Nothing useful is vice : therefore Converse. E. No vice is useful. Both terms in each are distributed. '(Art. 99.) *Inferential conversion is that, when the truth of the converse may be expressed by the word, therefore, con- sequently or wherefore ; or as something infered from the truth of the original. 1. As, Original. E. No virtuous man is a rebel ; therefore Converse. E. No rebel is a virtuous man. 2. It should not be supposed from the word " inferential" that this conversion is a process of reasoning : it is in fact only stating the same judgment in another form. — Whately,p. 58. (Art. 100.) No conversion is employed for any logical pur- pose when either any term is distributed in the converse which was not distributed in the original, or when it is not inferential. 1. If any term be distributed in the converse which was not distributed in the original, a term may be employed univer- sally in the converse which was employed only partially in the original, as Original. A. All birds are animals. not Cofiverse. A. All animals are birds. 5 inferential. In the converse, the term " animals," is distributed which was not distributed in the original : therefore, in the original it was employed only partially, but in the converse univer- sally ; and cannot be inferential. 2. Conversion is never inferential when any term is dis- * This has been called " illative :" thus the particles ergo, idea, igitur, id- circo, itaque, quapropter, &c. are said to be illative. The word " inferen- tial" however, may be more generally understood. 116 SYNTHETICAL COMPENDIUM. tribuied in the converse which was not distributed in the original : a few cases however occur where the conversion is not inferential, when the distribution of both propositions complies with the condition. 3. This, however, may be clearly stated in the following manner, wherein all the possible conversions, inferential or otherwise, which can be made with the four originals. A, E, I or O are given, according to the rule, with which it is hoped the learner is now well acquainted, viz. " A distributes the subject, O the predicate, I neither, andE both,^^ every distri- buted term will be marked as usual, viz. with a line above it ; and the word therefore will be prefixed to every converse which, according to article 100, is inferentially deducible from its original. CASE I. Where A is the Original, A. All birds are animals. Obiginal. Excluded. A. All animals are birds. Converse. Exchided. E. No animal is a bird. Converse. Therefobe I. Some animals are birds. Converse. J\rot inferential. 0. Some animals are not birds. CASE 11. Where E is the Original. Converse. E. No bird is a quadruped. Original. THERErOBE E. No quadruped is a bird. Converse. J\rot inferential. A. All quadrupeds are birds. Converse. JVoi inferential. I. Some quadrupeds are birds. Converse. Thebeeobe 0. Some quadrupeds are not birds. CASE III. Where I is the Original. Converse. I. Some animals are birds. ORIGIIfAL. Therefobe I. Some birds are animals. Converse. Excluded. A. All birds are animals. Converse. Excluded. E. No bird is an animal. Converse. Excluded. 0. Some birds are not animals. CASE IV. Where is the Original. Converse. 0. Some animals are not birds. Origikai. Excluded. 0. Some birds are not animals. Converse, J\rot inferential. A. All birds are animals. Converse. Excluded. E. No bird is an animal. Converse. JVot inferential I. Some birds are animals. Converse. ON THE OPPOSITION, &;C. OF PROPOSITIONS. 117 It is therefore evident that the above rule allows of only the following cases of correct conversion ; viz. A into I ; E into E, or E into O, and I into I, for in not any of these cases is any term distributed in the converse which was not dis- tributed in the original ; they are therefore inferential. But A cannot be converted into A, nor into E, for in either case the converse would have the term " animal" distributed, which was not distributed in the original ; for the same rea- son cannot be converted into nor into E. I cannot be converted into A, into E, nor into O ; for each of these has one or more terms distributed, whereas I has none. Though in the following examples there is no term distri- buted in the converse which was not distributed in the origi- nal, contrary to ihejirsf part of rule 100, yet not being in- ferentialf they are not consistent with its second part. From A. All birds are animals ; it is not inferential that O. Some animals are not birds. From E. No bird is a quadruped, it cannot be infered that A. All quadrupeds are birds, or that I. Some quadrupeds are birds. From O. Some animals are not birds, it is not inferential that I. Some birds are animals. (Art. 101.) Inferential conversion is twofold; simple and PARTICULAR. (Art. 102.) Simple conversion* is that, when, after the in- terchange of subject and predicate, E remains E, or T re- mains I ; as Original. E. No predacious animal is ruminant; ?^ere/bre Converse. E. No ruminant animal is predacious. — Or, Original. I. Some knowing the Coptic language are Arabians ; therefore Converse. I. Some Arabians are men knowing the Coptic. 2. Simple conversion is sometimes said to be effected when neither the quantity nor quality is changed ; as E into E, or I into I; this, however, would hold equally good were A con- verted into A, or O into O; neither of which, as we have already seen, is admissible, on account of terms distributed in the converse not distributed in the original, and consequently not inferential. * By simple conversion here must be understood that which is inferential. 118 SYNTHETICAL COMPENDIUM. 3. The only case where A can, consistently with truth, be converted into A, is in reciprocal propositions, or where the subject and predicate reciprocate or interchange with one another, without a change in sense ; as, Wine is the juice of the grape, or the juice of the grape is wine, Jill triangles are figures bounded by three right lines, or all figures bounded by three right lines are triangles. This is always the case in propositions whose predicates are exact definitions of the subject. (Art. 103.) Particular conversion is that which converts a universal proposition into its own particular : as A into I, or £ into 0; 1. as, A. All chronometers are time-pieces ; therefore I. Some time-pieces are chronometers, or, E. No Yice is a useful thing ; therefore 0. Some useful things are not rices. 2. This kind of conversion was formerly called " conversio per accidens" or " accidental:^'' also limitation, because it limits the quantity; but joar/icw/«r^conversion, indicating that it is from a universal proposition to a particular, is a name more suited to its character. 2. There is another mode of conversion, called by some, conversion by contra-position : by Dr. Whately, ^'conversion by negation. " But since it is in no way serviceable in the reduction of syllogisms, we mention, without recommending it to notice. It is effected either by the insertion of a negative particle, hence called negation, both in the subject and predi- cate ; or by the change of a positive into a privative or other term, signifying the absence of the attribute expressed in the original. Thus O may be converted into I ; E may be con- verted this way, 0. Some members of the university are not learned. If **not learned" be considered as the predicate, or the privative term unlearned put instead of its positive learned, the above proposition becomes I, and may then be simply converted; as, 1. Some members of the university are not learned. rather, I. Some members of the university are unlearned men. which by simple conversion becomes I. ^ome unlearned men are memberg of the university* OF THE OPPOSITION, &C. OF PROPOSITIONS. 119 A. Every poet is a man of genius ; therefore He who is not a man of genius is not a poet, or, none but a man of genius can be a poet, or, a man of genius alone can be a poet. The original proposition is equivalent to this, subj. pred. rvA^^ f — ^ ^ E. No poet is not-a-man-of-genius, which may simply be converted subj. pred. t ^ ^ (^^ E. None, not-a-man-of-genius, is a poet. 3. Dismissing the whole of this conversion by negation, in- troduced by some, as unnecessary, we proceed to state that the whole doctrine of conversion may, for every practical purpose, be easily remembered by the aid of the following summary rule, (Art. 104.) By simple conversion E is converted into E, and I into I ; by particular conversion, A into I ; and E into 0. 1. Simple conversion in the reduction of syllogisms is al- ways represented by the letter S ; particular conversion by the letter P. INTERROGATORY EXAMINATION, ON Chap. V. Q. 1. What do you understand by propositions being said to be opposed to one another 1 Art. 90. Q. 2 . What are the symbols by which propositions are represented ] Q. 3. Repeat the memorial lines expressive of the four principal kinds of propositions. Q. 4. What is meant by the quantity of a proposition 1 Q. 5. What is meant by the qitality of a proposition 1 Q. 6. What does A represent 1 Q. 7. What does E represent % Q. 8. What does I represent ? Q. 9. What does represent 1 Q. 10. Are A and E opposed in quantity or quality ? Q, 11. Are I and O opposed in quantity or quality 1 120 SYNTHETICAL COMPENDIUM, Q. 12. Are A and I opposed in quantity or quality 1 Q. 13. Ate E and O opposed in quantity or quality 1 Q. 14. How are A and opposed ? Q. 15. How are E and I opposed 1 Q. 16. Out of A, E, I and 0, select those two which are universals. Q. 17. Out of A, E, I and O select those two which are particulars. Q. 18. Out of A, E, I and 0, select those two which are affirmatives. Q. 19. Out of A, E, I and O, select those two which are negatives. Q. 20. How many kinds of opposition are there 1 92. Q. 21. "What is contrary opposition 1 93. Q. 22. What is subcontrary opposition ? 93. Q. 23. What is subaltern opposition 1 93. Q. 24. What is contradictory opposition ] 93. Q. 25. What do the other symbols, t, f, n, i, c, represent 1 93, note 3. Q. 26. What is the first rule of opposition 1 94, rule 1. Q. 27. What is the second rule of opposition 1 94, rule 2. Q. 28. What is the third rule of opposition 1 94, rule 3. Q. 29. What is the fourth rule of opposition 1 94, rule 4. Q. 30. What is the fifth rule of opposition 1 94, rule 5. Q. 31. Can you repeat by heart those two rules into which the whole doc- trine of opposition is compressed 1 95 and 96. Q. 32. What do you understand by the conversion of propositions 1 97. Q. 32. Give an example of conversion. Q. 33. What is that proposition called which is proposed to be converted 1 98. Q. 34. What is that proposition called which is converted from its origi- nal? 98. Q. 35. Explain inferential conversion. 99. Q. 36. What is the general law of all correct conversion 1 100. Q. 37. What is the reason that the proposition A, cannot generally be con- verted into A ] Q. 38. What is the reason that the following proposition which is A, can- not be converted into A ! viz : A. All the Pennsylvanians are Americans. Q. 39. How many kinds are there of inferential conversion 1 101. Q. 40. What is simple conversion 1 102, Q. 41. When after the interchange of subject and predicate, which always takes place in conversion, E remains E still, and I remains I, what kind of conversion is that? Q. 42. What is particular conversion ? 103. Q. 43. When a universal is converted into its own particular, what kind of conversion is that] 103. Q. 44. When A is converted into I, or E into 0, what kind of conversion is that] Q. 45. Can you repeat by heart one rule which comprises, for all practical purposes, the whole doctrine of conversion 1 104. ON EVIDEl^CE. INTRODUCTORY REMARKS. 1. Hitherto the subjects of our inquiry have been propositions and their parts ; and a proposition is an act of judgment determin- ed on evidence, and expressing that a being, is, or is not ; since " sum" is equal to " /am existing, or /am an existent being /" or that any two things agree or disagree. 2. Since every act of argumentation, correctly and fully stated, implies two premises, each a proposition, independently of the con- clusion, these propositions, therefore, or the two acts of judgment which they involve, are the foundation of our reasoning, and of our true or false conclusions. 3. Since the evidence necessary to determine our judgment on all the subjects that may claim our attention, is co-extensive with the whole range of being of which we can have any knowledge ; or with the whole circle of all the several sciences themselves, and which it is properly the business of those sciences respectively to impart ; and also, since Logic is more strictly concerned with the third act of the mind, reasoning or argumentation, Dr. Whately, properly confines the whole of his treatise to what is merely ne- cessary to explain the correct mode by which that act can be ex- pressed, not accounting it his business as an author or lecturer on logic, to determine your judgment, as a student, relative to the truth or falsity of any proposition, notwithstanding that your conclu- sion must be deduced from two premises, or from two acts of judg- ment expressed or implied. That is, the lecturer on Logic expects you, as a student, to come as fully prepared with ideas, and with all that knowledge, evidence and conviction, as are necessary to ena- ble you to form your own propositions, of which it is his business only to show the correct expression, and if they are duly connect- ed with the conclusion. Logic, strictly speaking, is merely con- cerned with the distinction of terms, and the form not the matter of the proposition. It is the business of the student to see that the terms suitably express his own ideas, and that his propositions de- clare his judgment of the agreement or disagreement of them ac- cording to the knowledge he has. But with the mode in which any two of those propositions are or can be connected so as to form a syllogism, or an act of argumentation correctly stated, and with the detection of such conclusion as is irregularly deduced from them, Logic is immediately concerned ; whilst you are at liberty to gain all the knowledge and evidence that compose your premises from 122 ON EVIDENCE. science of any kind, and from the universe of things around you. 3. We repeat that Dr. Whately, and before him, Mr. "Wesley,* were right in this proper and limited view of the peculiar province of Logic ; as much as the Lecturer on Book-keeping, when he ex- pects that his pupil comes to him duly prepared with a knowledge of arithmetic. The lecturer on Book-keeping, does not account it to be his business to instruct his pupil in the science and practice of calculation, whether of interest, discount, commission or ex- change, but merely in the business of journalizing, posting and balancing a set of mercantile books. The very circumstance of re- presenting it to be the province of Logic, not only to teach the art of reasoning, but also to furnish all the ideas, knowledge and evi- dence of the truth of propositions, which, of course, must be as extensive as the unlimited science of ontology, is not only in itself absurd, but has through mystifying the specific object of Logic, in a mass of irrelevancy, from which the discrimination of ages has not, until lately, rescued it, done more to deprive men generally of the simple art of reasoning correctly, and of detecting fallacies, however artfully concealed, than is commonly imagined. For this reason, therefore, it is by no means urged on the instructor to arrest the pupil's progress, but rather to allow him to proceed immediate- ly from the chapters on propositions to those on syllogisms ; after which the present chapter on evidence and the two following on in- duction and analogy may constitute useful subjects of more leisure perusal. Neither is it asserted on the other hand, that knowledge and evi- dence are not necessary to judgment, and to its correct expres- sion in a proposition, since, without them, the latter could not exist. Knowledge and experience, it is the business of our mortal, if not of our immortal lives to obtain. The various degrees of knowledge possessed by different individuals are already indefinite ; but there is no necessity on this account that any one should not use, even in Logic, whatever degree of knowledge he has, because he has not now all he may have. Special evidence, or the evidence which belongs to each department of knowledge, would lead us through all the sciences, and through the whole path of life, a path which every one must travel for himself; and as he travels learn to use what knowledge and evidence he has correctly to purposes salutary to himself, and to the circle of society around him. In contradistinc- tion, however, to special, we shall, in this chapter, merely advert to general evidence, or to those general principles and provisions in nature which determine our judgment, or enable us to express ourselves with confidence and accuracy on that ground where logic meets us, namely, on that of the propositions. * See Compendium of Logic, 4th edition. Sold by T. Blanshard, City Road, London. CHAP. VI. 1. I am ; or, I am existing. I think ; or, lama being capable of sense and thought. The sun is rising. The snow is white. That coal is hot. A whole is greater than each of its parts. [t is impossible for the same thing, at the same time^ to be, and not to be. A killed B, according to the testimony of C. The three angles of a triangle are together equal to two right angles. Nothing, or that which is not a thing, cannot produce any- thing. A being powerless cannot opierate. What is not an agent cannot act. Every effect proceeds from a cause. There is a God. Man is accountable for his actions. 2. The above are propositions, each the proceed of a dis- tinct act of judgment. Judgment is the result of evidence. The evidence, however, that determines the above proposi- tions, is of different kinds. What assures me, " that I exist," that, " the sun is rising," — " that coal is hot," — " a whole is greater than each of its parts," is different from that, which informs me, that " the three angles of a triangle are together equal to two right angles ;" and that again is likewise different from the evidence implied in the proposition, " A killed B, ac- cording to the testimony of C." 3. Our considerations on evidence necessarily involve the following particulars : 1st. That which testifies. 2d. That which is testified ; or testimony. 3d. Evidence. 4 th. The faculties of perceiving it. 5th. Conviction consequent on that perception. 6 th. The moral consequences of that conviction. (Art. 105.) That which testifies, may beany being, ani- 124 ON EVIDENCE. mate or inanimate, the facts or experience of history, or the discoveries and deductions of science duly established. 1. That which testifies, or is capable of testifying to every rational mind, or creature having faculties competent to per- ceive, is any being animate or inanimate. Thus we are told that " the Heavens declare the glory of God ; and the firma- ment sheweth his handy work. Day unto day uttereth speech, and night unto night sheweth knowledge. There is no speech nor language where their voice is not heard. Their line is gone out through all the earth, and their words to the end of the world."* " For the invisible things of him from the crea- tion of the world are clearly seen, being understood by the things that are made, even his eternal power and Godhead ; so that THEY ARE WITHOUT EXCUSE."f "In keason's ear they all rejoice. And utter forth a glorious voice ; For ever singing as they shine, The hand that made us is divine."^ This then is their testimony, " the hand that made us is divine^" 2. Likewise not only the facts that occur during our own histo- ry or those of which we read in the history of nations; the axioms and truths of science intuitively perceived, or the volumes of demonstrative instruction, that are, for our investigation, open to us, in common with all that have the power and will to use the faculties we possess, are so many separate and distinct testifiers, or sources of testimony ; as well as the two all important volumes of natural^ and revealecl|| religion, and the several and abundant aids that serve to explain them. 'E.mvot iiTiv ai /ua^rv^ovirai Trigi iy.ov. — John v. 39. (Art. 106.) Testimony is a tacit or express declaration, * Psalms xix. 1 to 4. | Rom. i. 20. 4: Addison. §See Ray on the Wisdom of God in the Creation, Derham's Astro and Physico Theology, Sturm's Reflections, the works of Cambray, Nieuwentyt, Bonnet, Swammerdam, Linne, Adams' Philosophy, Paley's Natural Theology; and a very excellent volume entitled, " the Class book of Natural Theology" by the Rev.H. Fergus, edited by the Rev. C. H. Alden, of Philadelphia. II See Cudworth's Intellectual System, Newton and Kershaw on the Pro- phecies, Campbell on Miracles, Jennings on internal evidence, and Ditton and West on the Resurrection ; the works of Leland and Leslie, Bishop of Lan- dolph and Rev. A. Suter in answer to Paine ; Rev. Simpson's (of Macclesfield) Plea, and also on the Divinity of Christ ; Jortin on the Truth of Christianity ; Drew on Immortality and also on the Resurrection ; Bentley's Boyleian Lec- tures, and Jones on the Trinity. These with many others, are testifiers, or witnesses of the truth. ON EYIDENCE. 125 having a tendency to establish, or amount to complete evi- dence of the truth testified. 1. A, in a court of law, is accused of killing B, in the town Z. E, however affirms that this was not true, since he saw A 100 miles distant from the town Z, at the time in question. This, until contradicted by F, is supposed to be testimony, who satisfactorily proves that E has motives in common with A, and in addition to E's known want of integrity, that he instead of being 100 miles distant, was seen by F, in the town Z, at the time specified. The veracity of F is known, that of E suspected, and therefore that which was supposed to be testimony as given by E, is found to be false or no evidence at all. On the contrary, C affirms that he saw A kill B. This is the testimony of C, but as yet it is not evidence, since the character of C is not known, until D and others give not only satisfactory proof as to his integrity, but also further testify such corroborative facts, as render the testimony of C suf- ficient evidence to the judge and jury. 2. Thus in philosophy, A affirms that the liquid alkali, as well as the fixed, is reducible to a metallic base, and that he witnessed an experiment, partially successful, undertaken to prove its possibility. This is testimony having a tendency to establish or amount to a full proof or demonstration, but not certainty or evidence, until B, on whose integrity and veracity we have full reliance, assures us that he actually saw ammo- nia decomposed into the metal ammonium, and that the verity of the fact was tested by every proof that either the analytic or synthetic process could afford : this is evidence, and such that even A's former testimony is now admitted within the integral quantity of evidence which we possess. 3. Testimony by writers on Mental Philosophy is commonly called probable evidence. Testimony or probable evidence is distinct from demonstration or evidence. Demonstration or full evidence is such as not to admit the possibility of so adding demonstration to demonstration as to make the first clearer, or without tautology. Demonstration or evidence is so suf- ficient in itself that it needs no aid from any other, and it can receive none. I see the sun ; so do you ; but your telling me this, is to me, no additional proof that the sun is to be seen : or if, whilst I see the sun, you shut your eyes, your telling me that you see not the sun, does not invalidate my evidence that the sun is to be seen. 4. A affirms to B, C, D, that at such an hour and in such a l2 126 OS EVIDENCE. part of the heavens a comet is to be seen. B, at the time attends, but without glasses, C takes a refracting, and D a reflecting telescope. B testifies that he sees something, where he expected to see nothing, but he cannot tell what. The testimony of C is, that by his refractor, he discovers in that part of the heavens an appearance that he cannot account for, according to the catalogues furnished by either Flamstead or Cassini. But D testifies that by his powerful reflector, he not only sees the comet, but its tail and all the usual appendages. B, C, and D now use the reflector, and all see the same ; and now the previous testimony amounts to evidence. 5. '^The strength of probable reasoning," says Jamieson, " for the most part depends not upon any one testimony, but upon many, which unite their force and lead to the same con- clusion. Any one of them by itself would be insufficient to convince ; but the whole taken together may have a force that is irresistible. Who, for example, would now seek, after all the previous testimonies, new arguments to prove that there were such persons as Maria Antoinette, Q,ueen Char- lotte, Charles the first, or Oliver Cromwell V'' 6. Every testimony, acknowledged to be such, produces a proportional degree of assent or belief. The judgment may be in suspense between two contradictory opinions, when there is nothing to amount to evidence for either. In propor- tion as credible testimony prevails on this side or on that, assent or belief in degree rises, until the several testimonies constitute full integral evidence, when, if the faculties of per- ception are sufficient and exercised, testimony rises to evi- dence, and assent or belief to certainty. 7. There are cases, when not in consequence of the want of evidence itself, but of the faculties not being able, through want of previous exercise, to perceive it as such, or to com- prehend it in its integral totality, in which it does not appear without our being willing first to apprehend all the several testimonies that collectively, as component parts, constitute that evidence ; which cannot, in such cases, be on any other condition obtained. Thus when tyro informs the mathema- tician that he is desirous to learn and practice the peculiar application of fluxions, he is informed that this he cannot do, unless he first willingly attend to arithmetic, algebra, geome- try, and conic sections. C informs both A and B that if they will follow him, or embrace his counsel, he will conduct them to situations where both their circumstances will be prosper- ON EVIDENCE. 127 ous, and themselves happy. A refuses to do this unless he can have at once the full evidence that he shall realize what is promised. This full evidence, he is informed, not on account of its non-existence, but in consequence of his faculties not be- ing strengthened by exercise or previous acquisition to receive it, he cannot, in the first case, have : that the successive ac- quisitions of truth are obtained only by the successive ex- ercises\of the mind, and in no other way ; nevertheless that he shall, from time to time, be supplied with so much testimo- ny as he can comprehend, until the several testimonies amount to full evidence, and his several acts oi assent or be- lief ^\\3.\\ am.ount to certainty. To this condition B (the be- liever) accedes, and enjoys the present and perpetual advan- tages, which A (the atheist) loses for ever. 8. On this very point may be seen and contemplated a very peculiar and important matter relative to our intellectual character. Evidence frequently cannot be perceived unless the mind expand by exercise, accompanied with an ade- quate desire, through the proper means, to obtain the end, until it is competent to receive all the evidence it can require. The mind of an infant cannot comprehend all that is known to an adult, any more than the latter can all that is known to the man of mature experience and practice. Should the mind of the infant through the whole of its minority be neg- lected, it will, when at the period of corporeal maturity, be an ignoramus. For the same reason, if the mind of the adult be neglected, even should it continue to be connected with mortality until it is three or four score, and surrounded too with all the mass of evidence it has neglected to use, it will " be weighed in the balances and found wanting." If truth or evidence is not perceived, it is not because that truth or evidence does not exist, and that too to the full extent that can concern us. Nor are they not perceived because we have not faculties, but because of our neglect or unwilling- ness so to exercise them in the proper means, and in the right w^ay, as to enable us, from time to time, to apprehend as our exercise and consequent ability increase, the several testimo- nies that collectively will constitute that evidence, and afford us all the conviction and certainty of that truth, that a sentient, rational being can possibly desire ; until all that which before required testimony added to testimony, and one proof to an- other in order that they should constitute evidence or demon- stration, is now to us a matter of intuitive conviction, which no further testimony, evidence or demonstration can possibly 128 ON EVIDENCE. increase. Once I was blind, but now I see! Consequently, with my own unborrowed eyes, I see that sun ; and therefore need not either any, nor all the glasses, spectacles or tele- scopes found in the store of the optician. Without thenn, or the need of any other help, I have unclouded evidence that there is a sun that shines on me, on all ; and if some, either through a defect in the faculties of vision or a neglect of using them, see not that sun, it diminishes not the conviction and its consequences that I possess and enjoy. 9. Testimony or probable evidence, Dr. Reid divides as fol- lows : 1. Human Testimony. 2. The authority of those who are good judges of the point in question. 3. That whereby we recognize the identity of things and persons. 4. That which we have of men's future actions and con- duct from the general principle of action in man, or from our knowledge of the individuals. 5. That by which we collect men's character and designs from their actions and conversa- tions. 6. The probability of chances. 7. That by which the known laws of nature have been discovered, and the eifects which have been produced by them, in former ages, or which may be expected in time to come. 10. Human Testimony is that from which the greatest part of knowledge is derived. The faith of history is built upon it as well as the decisions of solemn tribunals. " When several independent original witnesses, with equal advantages for knowing the fact, and without any previous concert, agree in their report, they mutually strengthen each other's testimony. This concurrence of several independent testimonies is itself a probability distinct from that, which may be termed the sum of the probabilities, resulting from the separate testimonies. The circumstances constituting the crefi^i^zV//?/ of a witness are, 1st, Sufficient discernment, opportunity and attention^ioohidLin a clear knowledge of the fact. 2. Disinterestedness, or the absence of all expectations of advantage or detriment, arising from the testimony. 3. Integrity, which affords the strongest assurance of a true testimony, inasmuch as it is ab- solutely inconsistent with any intention to deceive or prevari- cate."* 11. Testimony of this kind is either oral ov written. Oral TESTIMONY is either original or transmitted, or what is gene- rally termed traditional. It is original when it is derived from one who had sensible evidence of the fact asserted ; and • Elements of Logic by Levi Hedge, L. L. D. ON EVIDENCE. 129 transmitted or traditiofial, when given by one who obtain- ed his knowledge from another or from any original witness. " Written testimony is usually esteemed stronger and more deserving of confidence than oral ; for the record, being made, for the most part, without a knowledge of the uses to which it is afterwards applied, may be presumed to have been written without any undue bias : Farther, as the record of facts is usually made soon after they occur, this testi- mony is secure against any defects arising from the imperfec- tion of memory. Written testimony is also less liable to have its credibility impaired by transmission than oral." If two or more written records, relative to the same facts, exist, and in all material points agree, the credibility is increased. Mere circumstantial variation as to points of minor consequence, not affecting what is essential, tends rather to increase than to di- minish that credibility ; for this is precisely what in all ordina- ry cases, will and must occur, where previous concert and col- lusion are excluded. (Art. 107.) Evidence is that complete testimony, or con- currence of testimonies, which is sufficient to produce certainty or conviction in faculties capable and willing to perceive it ; and remains sufficient evidence, though not perceived as such through a neglect in the exercise of the faculties of perception, ^ 1. For example, Euclid wrote a work containing self-evi- dent axioms and demonstrations, on the [subject of intuitive and deductive evidence, relative to the magnitude and exten- sion of matter. This book has been read not only by the most scientific men, but by men of the strongest minds for two thousand years, and by them, without a dissentient voice, acknowledged to be, on the subject, a volume of evidence. In this book then there is evidence as acknowledged by all men that have any claim to rationality. But evidence as it is, and must remain to be, it conveys no conviction to the clown, to the man that prefers ignorance to knowledge, or darkness to light, and still less so to him, who through a perversity, not less than monstrous, of what once might have been rational, denies the veracity of his own senses, or the existence of mat- ter, and consequently of magnitude and extension. Notwith- standing this, the evidence is to be found in this book, as much as a color, a sound, an axiom or a demonstration remain a color, a sound, an axiom or a demonstration, although the blind, the deaf and the lunatic perceive them not. 130 ON EVIDENCE. 2. Three men are sitting with me in this room. We all appear to be looking through the window towards the oppo* site green. One man has the faculty of vision, but neglects to use it; his mind is vacant, and his attention unemployed*, Another, through misem ploy ment, weakened this faculty, and cannot see distinctly at a distance. The third, though not so blind but that he might recover his sight, yet has no desire to use the means. I see distinctly a mass of gold on that green. The evidence to me is so clear that I am convinced of it: but though evidence, it is not evidence to them. The consequence is, I have the advantage, and they the loss. This supposition, though expressed figuratively, refers to the case of thousands. Evidence, light, sufficient as to every necessary truth, actually exist, and that too within our reach. And the very existence of this light or evidence, whether we use it or not, renders us responsible.* 3. Besides it is only through a proper exercise of the facul- ties of perception that the mind acquires power so to perceive the evidence of some of the most sublime and interesting truths that concern us, that it can become conviction. ^' It is only by the means of something antecedent," said Dr. Johnson, " that any thing is known." But when all means of acquir- ing those antecedent ideas, or of laying the foundation, are neglected, how can we ever hope to arrive at the superstruc- ture ? Superabundant means of obtaining that evidence are before us ; but if we neglect the means of perceiving it, to us that evidence can never become such conviction as to lead to consequences identical with our happiness. (Art. 108.) The faculties of perceiving evidence are those, which, in apprehension, enable mind to form an idea of ONE term ; in judgment^ to determine the agreement or disagreement of two ; and in reasoning to deduce a conclu- sion from THREE. 1. What faculties they are by which we perceive evidence, and by which we are ourselves beings capable of assent, be- lief, convictian and certainty, it is of importance to inquire. Were we to attend to the writers on Mental Philosophy, to those that insist on all the distinctions that Metaphysics, not Logic, would institute, we should require all the discrimination necessary to enable us to vary our terms to express these as different cases might require ; as in sensation, perception, * AwT» (fi ialn n X4^m, on to ty!t7nio-etv oi Av^^ceTroi ftethKoit TO cr«oT9f, » to And to specialize, or reduce the genus animal to its species bird, it is only necessary, as appears by the above example, to take off again, by abstraction, such parts of its extension, found under brackets in the right hand column, as do not agree with bird ; i. e. neither man, nor beast, nor fish, nor insect is a bird; the rest of animal is a bird. Therefore, to generalize a species into its genus, you take off, by abstraction, that part of its comprehension that con- stitutes its essential difference, but no part of its extension, since they are all animals. And to reduce a genus to a species, you take off, by ab- straction, such parts of its extension as do not agree with the species, but no part of its comprehension which is common to all. But how in chemistry would abstraction or generahzation differ from analysis? Take for example the proposition, A nitrate is a neutral salt. The comprehension of a nitrate, is 1st, composed of an acid and a base, and 2d, its essential difference, composed of the nitric acid and a base; its extension is, the nitrate of potassa, the nitrate of soda, the nitrate of ammonia, nitrate of lime, nitrate of silver, &c. The comprehension of neutral salt, the predicate is, having ponent parts ; \^ the art of preparing medicines ; §§ the classification of dis- eases ; nil the art of healing; *[[f see excellent plans for the arrangement of books and of large libraries in the supplemental volume of Dr. A. Clarke's Bib- liography, 8 vol. 8vo. 140 ON EVIDENCE. properties distinct from either of its component parts: its ex- tension is, nitrates, sulphates, chlorates, acetates, &c. Now the species, a nitrate, is generalized into its genus, a neutral salt, by taking off, or abstracting its essential differ- ence, a part of its comprehension, viz. composed of the nitric acid and a base : this taken away, we have its generic cha- racter, ** a neutral salt." Or to reduce a '* neutral salt" to its species, '^nitrate," we take off, or abstract such parts of its extension, viz. sulphates, chlorates, acetates, &c., as do not agree with the species, " nitrate." But still, here is no analysis. To effect this, therefore, we must have some individual nitrate, say the nitrate of ammonia, and decompose it into its two component parts, viz. the nitric acid and ammonia, which process is not implied by either abstraction or generalization. 13. Analysis is another important process by which evi- dence is obtained. It is that by which the whole of any indi- vidual of a species is taken to pieces, in order to view some particular part considered separately, or to have a more cor- rect perception relative to the composition of the whole. It is by this that a mineral or an ore is examined, to determine if it contain any metal or other valuable substance, by divest- ing the compound of its unnecessary parts. Thus morphia is found to be the narcotic principle in the larger mass opium ; and consequently that more of the energy of this drug may be exhibited in less volume. In the same way, quinine is found to be the active part of cinchona, or the Peruvian bark. By this mode of obtaining evidence, some of the most lu- minous and useful discoveries have been made in the sciences. Thus it is found that the base of every tree, of every vege- table, is a metal !* that there is metal in every piece of soap; and that fire may be lighted with water !! * A whole tree may be thus analyzed ; not as the botanist would do to suit his purpose. The whole tree, roots, leaves and all, may be burnt to ashes ; the ashes may be washed, and the washings when drained off are a weak solution of the carbonate of potassa. The unnecessary quantity of water is driven off by rapid evaporation, or boiling, (a part of the analysis) until what remains is stronor enough to crystallize, when the carbonate of potassa appears, a white salt, commonly called potash, as found in the shops. It is now requisite to divest this of the carbonic acid, which constitutes a carbonate. Lime has a stronger affinity for that acid than potassa in combination with it. Quick lime, i.e. lime deprived of its own carbonic acid, is therefore mixed with a heated solution of the carbonate of potassa. The lime seizes the carbonic acid of po- tassa, and therefore potassa being set free, is precipitated to the bottom of the vessel, and obtained in its solid state, potassa, by evaporation, Potassa is a ON EVIDENCE. 141 By this faculty of obtaining evidence, a whole subject or book may be analyzed ; its several parts distinctly contem- plated, their mutual coherency perceived, and the relevancy or irrelevancy of its parts to the chief point, evinced or ex- posed, as the case may require. Thus an argument, whether it occupy an hour or two,-nr three in the delivery, or whether expanded over a page, a chapter or a volume, may be taken to pieces, and it may be shown, if the parts are such as to ad- mit of ever being put together again ; or whether sound has not been substituted for sense ; wit, plausibility and rhetoric for argumentation, and as a counterfeit passed oiF amongst the unthinking. This process, in such case, would constitute sound criticism, to which all its canons relative to taste, fancy and imagination would be, comparatively, of inferior and secondary importance. The contemplation of character, frequently is a matter of no small importance to our moral conduct and happiness. But character is often a complex consideration, that requires be- ing divested of every thing which is temporary or casual in its duration, accidental as to circumstances, and not a native or essential feature in the delineation. Thus the recollection that it was the solicitude of Martha to make in a proper man- ner the requisite preparations, that encumbered her with care at a very interesting moment, is sufficient to intimate that she was by no means destitute of respect and love for the guest she entertained. 14 It does not appear to be generally thought that the pas- sions have any thing to do with perceiving any evidence we receive. Neither is it supposed that perception is any organ of sensation ; consciousness the act itself of thinking, remem- bering or reasoning ; nor mem.ory or reflection, the idea itself strong oxide of potassium, and requires a strong agent, as the galvanic battery, to drive off the oxygen which renders the metal yet an oxide. The oxygen, now flies off at the positive pole, and the pure metal, potassium, is obtained at the negative pole of the battery. Here is a metal obtained by analysis out of a tree, and thus we have the evidence of the convertibility of vegetable matter into metal. We view it as a simple, incomplex idea, a simple body, incapable by any art known of further decomposition ; almost giving presumptive proof that all matter originally was metallic, and that even our nine earths are me- tallic oxides, since several of them already have been reduced to their primitive metals. When tired of viewing the metal we have obtained, we throw it into a saucer of cold water. In a moment there is a fire ! The metal, size and shape of a pea, is running, whilst on fire, all over the water, as if greedy of the oxygen the water contains to reconvert itself into an oxide, or potassa, as it was before it became potassium. Here, by analysis, we have evidence that the base of vegetable matter is metallic, and that -water can light afirt I 142 ON EVIDENCE. to which by that reflex act we refer. When we perceive, are conscious, remember or reflect, it is on an idea or emotion pre- sented by sensation, thought, reasoning, &c. either at the same time or before, as the case may be ; and according to the great- er or less energy in that perception, consciousness, remem- brance or reflection do we retain that idea, or that evidence, for a greater or a less time. Thus it appears that perception, consciousness, remembrance and reflection are merely powers that are acting according to ideas given by other powers either before or at the same time ; and therefore before they act, or at the same time they act, there exists furniture in the mind given by other means. This, at all events, brings the passions very near to an identity with other powers already specified. Without undertaking to decide this, however, but leaving it at present problematical, we shall merely proceed to inquire, what is a passion, or what must exist in the'mind at the time when the energy implied by that passion is in operation? A slight reflection on the subject will convince us, that two ideas, at least, or the ideas of two terms, simple or complex, by whatever means obtained, must exist in the mind, whenever a passion is felt. There is the object of that passion, whether money, wealth, pleasure or pain, accommodation or annoy- ance, which becomes the subject of the mental proposition. The other idea is the predicate of that proposition, which, however ordinarily expressed by the epithets, *' desirable," ** beautiful," " lovely," or by " ugly," " unpleasant," " odious," ** wretched," "dreadful," &c. may be comprised in two words, viz: suitableness ov unsuitableness ; i. e. suitable to me, to you, or to another ; or unsuitable to me, to you or to some one contemplated, as the case may be ; " suitable to me" or " unsuitable to me" is the predicate, which is considered one term ; the propositions then stand thus. 1 2 That object is suitable to me. 1 2 " That object is unsuitable to me. Now if these two ideas, viz : the object which is perceived suitable to me, is not in possession, it is desired ; if its ul- timate attainment be a matter of probabiHty, I hope for it ; if it be possessed, its worth and value, duly appreciated, I re- joice in it. But if we take the other propositions, viz: 1 2 That object is unsuitable to me. ox EVIDENCE. 143 and if the object which is perceived to be unsuitable to me, beat a distance,! am averse to it ; if likely to occur, I fear it ; if inflicted, I grieve ; if on another, I am sorry ; if in- flicted injuriously by another on me, the object of the passion is transferred to another, the offender, and I am angry. These remarks are made merely to show that there cannot be less than two ideas or one proposition, in the mind, when- ever a passion is exerted. But the modifications of both the subject, as at a distance, probable or expected, in possession or suffered; and of the predicate, how or for what particular reasons, or on how many accounts suitable or unsuitable, im- ply that although not less than two ideas or one proposition can constitute the basis of a passion, yet on it many more pro- positions and consequently ideas may be built, not only on ac- count of the modifications just specified, but on account of the usual great activity of the thoughts during such emotions, when propositions, ideas and relative views may pass in the mind with inconceivable rapidity. Though it is not contended that the passions imply the ori- ginal powers by which we receive evidence, yet they often prove powerful means not only of enabling us to obtain a stronger view of the evidence given by other instruments, but of retaining it, in consequence of that strength, longer in the mind than we otherwise should have done. We are well aware that many are prepared to say, that if the passions can be considered either as means of receiving evidence, or as the channel through which it should, for a mo- ment, be permitted to flow, that at all events, they are often very dangerous powers in connection with evidence, or that any evidence, which may have been unfortunate enough to get into such bad company, can at best be, only an object of suspicion. We cannot see it, however, any more necessary, that because any part of a man has been in a diseased state, it should re- main always so, or not made equally sound with any other part, when healthy and correct action will be the necessary consequence, any more than we can see it necessary that a living man should always be chained to a dead man. We do not see any valid reason why we should stand aloof, or in a state of alarm, at any of the faculties an unerring Creator hath given us; especially since their restoration to healthy ac- tion is a declared possibility. If however we doubt this, or prefer, by habit, or wrong objects to keep the passions pervert- ed, we only fall under that rule, which applies generally to 144 ON' EVIDENCE. every power, " If the light that is in thee be darkness, how great is that darkness!"* We are not contending for the use of a blind eye, a deaf ear, or of a perverted passion, but for the healing of all, or of any of them, if they be diseased ; and can it be supposed, that they will not act, if they be healed, or that the action of any of them, in that state, will be worthless ? The passions when healed are noble endowments; paint an idea, in colors of clearest evidence, according to the dimensions of the full length portrait ; constitute the bond and amenities of social life, and are parents of all the acts that make man amiable to man. It is only for the passions in their healthy or correct state that we contend, not as being the original powers by which evidence is received, but as the most vivid energies by which it is impressed and retained. Where is there a stronger passion than the love of God? which we are told by testimony, and it has been proved by experience, that nothing except sin can conquer, not even death itself, and in it is evidence of the strongest character: for can a man love what he does not know ! ! And within this genus, and in no other, is comprised the species, the power of " loving our neighbor as ourselves :" therefore, without these^ two, mere civilization, ethics, &c. however excellent when in possession of consistent and vital energies, are nothing but the picture of a fire that cannot warm ; or are things that exist merely to contradict themselves. 15. We have now reviewed the several powers enumerated by writers on Mental Philosophy, that are, more or less, or in one way or the other, the means through which we receive evidence^ or retain that which we possess. But how are w^e allovt^ed by them, would we speak according to the common dialect of ordinary conversation, to express these faculties, as they are in combination with the varied circumstances of life? since an idea may be of an object that h present, distant, or fancied, external or internal, past, abstract, something immaterial yet known to exist, or what is charged on us as worthy of observation ? 16. For example, I am told, that the moon will rise this evening at 9 o'clock, eclipsed ; i. e. a7i object not now appa- rent to sense; I conceive an idea of it: so of a distant or fancied object, as an Egyptian pyramid, a centaur, or a flying horse. I am allowed to say, I conceive an idea of such things ; as, I can conceive an idea of old Troy that now no * Matt. vi. 23. ON EVIDENCE. 145 one sees; of Briareus with his hundred hands; of Argus with his hundred eyes ; or of Polyphemus with only one, yet large as a Grecian shield, and whose head touched the clouds. But 9 o'clock has come ; this moment the moon rises eclipsed. I perceive it ; before, of course, I conceived it, or an idea of it. Or, I am told of something that did occur, the comet for ex- ample, of 1811 ; I remember it : it is true, once, 1 perceived it. But I have occasion to observe not what is external, but something within, it may be a thought, what I fancy or im- agine, some emotion of the mind, as desire, hope, love, joy, &c.; I am conscious of it; or, it may be purely abstract, what I never saw, yet I know it exists ; it. may be virtue, justice, or mercy, space, motion, extension, spirit, duration, &;c.; here I am allowed to say I form an idea of it, or I am conscious that I am thinking of it — (thus far the ignorance of certain metaphysicians would go;) — or an object, it may be a continued subject, is charged on me as something worthy of observation; 1 attend to it. Perhaps we are going too fast, for we may have two ideas instead of one ; then we are compar- ing them ; which logicians call judgment, without making any concessions to metaphysicians, or varying their general terms to suit the purposes of common conversation, any more than chemists can alter the jnomenclature of Lavoisier and Fourcroy, to suit those who will never study chemistry. But we are not engaged, perhaps, with any thing within the reach of intuitive evidence. We may be reflecting on nature, and wonder v/hat it is. On investigation, we discover that its acts are regular, and properly directed to some wise and good end, with no deviations except what are referrible to principles comprehended within what is consistent with itself, as if the whole were one system of unique rules uniformly tending to some apparently beneficent purpose. We are conscious that this either is law, or we never had an idea what law is. And as for law without mind, something intelli- gent to form and direct that law, especially when directed to wise and salutary purposes, we immediately perceive to be absurd, the admission of which is utterly incompatible with rationality; we therefore arrive at the conviction that law is the expression of mind ; and as we before had discovered that nature is law, we are then prepared to reason thus — Law is the expression of mind. Nature is law ; therefore Nature is the expression of mind. 146 ON EVIDENCE. This is the act of reasoning, or the expression of it; and by it we obtain deductive evidence, viz. that '^ nature is the ex* pression ofmind.^^ We may now use this principle, obtain- ed by reasoning, and estabhsh it as a principle of deductive evidence, to find, to search after some other truth, viz. nature is the expression of mind! What mind? Where is that mind ; or rather where is it not ? since nature, its expression, is, in its operations, beheld here, there, every where — to-day, yesterday, one hundred, as well as a thousand years ago, working, proceeding by uniform laws productive of wise and beneficent design : in vegetables, in animals, in minerals, in matter, as well as in the animated man ; on the surface, be- neath it, on the dry land, in the waters, the mighty oceans, in the skies, the heavens ; all move by regular laws, towards consistent c design, as if guided by some ineflfable, matchless wisdom, power and goodness ; i. e. mind ! But where is that mind ? It is working here, there, elsewhere and every where to-day and yesterday, the same ; then that mind is here ! is there ! is every where ! And what impedes my faculties of perceiving evidence, that I have not become acquainted with that mind !! It made me ; not for a vain, a temporary, or an unworthy purpose, but for something consistent with infinite beneficence, in the consummation of which is the very fruition of my being!! Have [ then fully appreciated that? or do I recollect that I, a free agent, not a machine impelled by ne- cessity, may thwart that, by rules mine, not his? These though enthymemes expressed interrogatively, are reducible to syllogisms, from each of which, when proved, we should de- rive some new deductive evidence which again might be taken as a premiss, the minor or the major of another, as far as necessary. 17. It is, indeed, sufficiently clear that the several faculties of perceiving evidence, whether intuitive or deductive, how- ever modified by circumstances, are reducible to what logi- cians have agreed to express by apprehension, judgment, and argumentation. Whether we conceive, imagine^ per- ceive, remember, or are conscious of an idea, or attend to it, we, in logical language, apprehend it ; if we are engaged in the comparison of two, we are, in the logical sense, engaged in that act of judgment, which forms a proposition : or if we are engaged with three ideas, as in the preceding example, nature, law, mind, we are engaged with reasoning, more cor- rectly termed argumentation. All sciences have their tech- nicalities, without which, indeed, no science would be intelli- ON EVIDENCE. 147 gible; and apprehension, judgment, and argumentation are the names logicians have agreed to employ to express the faculties of perceiving evidence, whether intuitive or deduc- tive ; i. e. APPREHENSION, the power of apprehending one idea or term, whether it be of an object external, present, distant, fancied, past, or internal ; judgment, the faculty of perceiving evidence from the mental juxta-position or comparison of two ideas or terms ; and argumentation, the power of deriving deductive evidence by reasoning from three ideas or terms. These three expressions are sufficient, without regarding dis- tinctions which belong to metaphysics and common conversa- tion. A certain salt of a slight green colour, in ordinary lan- guage, is called copperas. The chemist calls it the sulphate of iron, knowing that not one particle of copper is in the mass. Thus the dialect of common discourse is often one thing, whilst that of science is, and must remain, another. (Art. 109.) AssENT'is a persuasion of the probability of tes- timony, and is more or less strong, according as that testimo- ny rises to evidence, when assent amounts to conviction. (Art. 110.) Conviction is the conscious perception of evi- dence, by faculties capable and willing to receive it. 1. The following remarks, with slight alteration, are ex- tracted from Mr. Wesley's Logic ; q. v. 2. That is an evident proposition, which extorts convic- tion, as soon as it is understood : as, the whole is greater than its part. That is a doubtful one, in which we know not how to determine ; as, the stars influence men. 3. If any thing occur, whereby the mind inclines to either side, that which was doubtful before, becomes probable. Such an assent is termed opinion. 4. Opinion, therefore, respects a barely probable proposi- tion, and implies no certainty at all. Yet there are several degrees, whereby it approaches towards certainty ; and the highest degree of probability, is not far distant from it. 5. Certainty is two-fold, 1st. that of the object, the thing to be perceived ; and 2d, that of the subject, the understand- ing which perceives it ; and both have their degrees. That is more certain, in the former sense, to which there is the less objection; that in the latter sense, to which the less objec- tion appears. 6. We might enumerate many kinds of evidence. But it 148 ON EVIDENCE. may suffice to observe, it rs either, 1. that of a self-evident axiom ; (i. e. intuitive evidence ;) or 2. that of a conclusion regularly deduced from propositions of intuitive or deductive evidence. This logicians term science ; which accordingly they define — " A conviction of certain and evident conclu- sions, regularly deduced from certain and evident premises." The certainty and evidence here implied are that both of the object and of the subject. For by the former, science is dis- tinguished from error; by the latter from opinion. Without the evidence of the subject, there can be no science : and this without the other, is as the existence of positive light in the presence of the blind. 7. We need not prove that there is such a thing as certain- ty : seeing all reasonable men allow it. We freely assent to what is affirmed by a wise man : and more freely, if he con- firm it by reason. Some things we are taught by nature it- self; and some by Divine revelation, and of all these we have sufficient certainty. 8. To assent to testimony is the same as to believe ; and such an assent is termed faith ; I)ivine faith depends on the testimony of God ; Human faith on the testimony of man. What nature dictates we may be said to perceive, what rea- son teaches us, to know. 9. God can neither deceive, nor be deceived ; men are often deceived, and often deceive. Reason and nature lowers. No- thing, therefore, is more firm than Divine faith : nothing less so, than human. In what v^e perceive or know, there is often no fear, always some danger of being deceived. Hence, there is the highest rest for the mind in divine faith ; the low- est of all in human. In what we know or perceive, there are various degress of rest according to the degree of testimo- ny or evidence ; probability or certainty. 10. If, therefore, we were to make a sort of scale of assent and conviction, it might consist of the following steps. , . 5 ^' H^^^-*^^ FAITH ; an assent to a doubtful proposition. ^ 2. Opiifiojf ; an assent to a probable proposition. 1. Assurance ; or conviction of the truth of a certain proposition . 2. SciEs-cE ; or conviction of the truth of a certain and evident conclusion. 2. CoifTiCTioif. -^ 3. Intelligence, or conviction of the necessary truth I of a self-evident axiom. I 4. Divine faith ; or conviction of the truth of Divine I Revelation, or of the necessary veracity of truth testifying^ \j)f itself. ON EVIDENGE. 149 1 ] . To each of these there belong certain principles, which are peculiarly proper to produce it. The principles of Di- vine Faith are those, and those only, which are contained in the Scriptures. Of intelligence, those which are properly termed axioms ; of science the conclusions regularly deduced from them. 12. An AXIOM is a proposition which needs not, and cannot be proved. This is a subject of intuitive evidence. Such are the following. From NATURAL DIVINITY. 1. God cannot deceive^ nor he deceived. Whence flow these certain and evident conclu- sions : 2. Absolute faith is due to the testimony of God : o. Revelation never contradicts either sense or reason. It may indeed transce-nb both. But it cannot possibly con- tradict either, rightly employed about its proper object. From MATHEMATICS. The whole is greater than each of its parts ; equal to them all. All right angles are equal to one another. Things which are equal to the same thing are equal to one another. From METAPHYSICS. It is impossible for the same thing, at the same time, to be and not to be. Some affirm this to be the only axiom in the world. Whoever affirmed this, had a miserably narrow and perverted mind. From LOGIC. Terms which agree in one and the same third, agree with one another. 13. Some suppose, that there are no axioms to be found in the other arts and sciences. But such principles at least, are found therein, as produce assurance, if not science. Such are these. Nothing, which is not a thing, cannot spring from itself, since that is not a thing. Nothing, which is not a thing, can be the cause of itself, since that self is not a thing. That which is not a thing, cannot have any attribute, since an at- tribute without a subject is impossible and inconceivable. That which is not an agent, (as nothing) cannot act. That which cannot act cannot produce any thing. What you would not have another to do to you, you ought not to do to aoother. 14. The principles that serve to produce opinion, are usual- ly styled maxims. They commonly hold, but not always. To this class those properly belong, which are, as it were, in the middle way, between doubtful and certain. 15. The uncertainty of human faith arises hence. In order to procure a firm assent of this kind, a competent witness must know what he says, and say what he knows ; and both be ap- parent to him that believes it. But this is rarely the case. 150 ON EVIDENCE. Wherefore we have always reason to suspect what we have no other proof of, than human testimony, even when there appears no more reason to doubt thereof, than of a mathemati- cal demonstration. 16. According to these six degrees of assent and conviction, propositions might have been divided with regard to their mat- ter, into infallible, self-evident, scientific, certain, probable and doubtful. But as the four first of these produce science, and any assent short of this, is indefinitely speaking, termed opinion, they are usually divided only into two classes. 1. That which produces science ; and this is called scientific or demonstrative, and often demonstration, 2. That which produces opinion; (any assent short of science) and is termed, assumptive ; i. e. arguing probably, or on assumed grounds. 17. There are two species of demonstration. The first de- monstrates that a thing is ; proving either directly that it is so, {and this is called direct demonstration) or that if it be not so, some absurdity must inevitably follow. This is called demonstratio ad absurdum. We may properly term it oblique. 18. We demonstrate directly, either 1, by proving a thing from its effect, as the sun gives no light ; therefore it is eclipsed. Or 2, by proving it from its remote cause, as the moon is dia- metrically opposite to the sun ; therefore it is eclipsed. But we prove this from the earth's being interposed between them ; this is 19. The second sort of demonstration, which demonstrates, why a thing is, by assigning its proximate and immediate cause. 20. But there may be a proximate, which is not the prime cause, that is self-evident, and indemonstrable, whose evidence is therefore prefered before all others, as needing no other light than its own. The stars are not necessary to show the sun. 21. There are then four degrees of demonstration: the oblique demonstration is good ; but the direct is preferable to it. Demonstration by the proximate cause is better still ; but ihQ prime cause, best of all. (Art. 111.) The consequences of conviction are the prac- tical and moral effects it should produce on rational free- agency. 1. Testimony, evidence, conviction, and even logic itself, are subjects eminently concerned with man. It is impossible ON EVIDENCE. 151 to consider man (exceptions there may be to all general rules) either as inert matter, or as an irrational being. But the de- grees within the precincts of rationality are indefinitely great and numerous ; and a wide difference exists between mere rationality, or rationality not in action, that is, the mere pas- sive capacity of understanding, and rationality vigorously ex- erted towards the end for which so high a talent is given. Had all men the mind either of Milton, the creative poet, or of Milton's Adam, when he found himself surrounded by testi- fiers more numerous than drops of evening dew on the spires of grass, they would perceive that testifiers do not exist with- out testimony, and that these several testimonies compose evidences as countless as the pages in nature's endless volumes ; and the conviction of this would be, that not an inch of space, nor a moment of time existed, without ample proof not only of their own original, but of the moral consequences of their rational existence, and the pleasing privileges to which they, as free agents, were invited. 2. Is it possible for a man, a man of active intelligence, to be placed in this, or in any similar condition, with all the con- viction that it is his privilege to enjoy, and conceive that any- thing is indifferent, or can he be indifferent to them ; whilst all these testimonies, this evidence, the countless pages of na- ture, the pages of life, the pages of experience, of revelation, of the volumes of science, all testifiers ; nay, of the volumes, the bibliothecas of Asia, Europe and America, lay expanded be- fore him ? Man, all sense, all intelligence, both active and passive, an agent and a patient, surrounded with evidence co- extensive with space, and co-existent with duration, and yet if not inactive, not active in a right way, is a paradox of the highest order ; giving a proof that it would require volumes to unfold, of the high value of conviction, and that convic- tion, of a right kind, is all that is wanting to breathe an at- mosphere of beneficence around the world. 3. As testimony, evidence and conviction minister to the happiness of man, so do doubt, uncertainty and scepticism not only to his own individual wretchedness, but tend so far as their influence goes, to the entire demolition of all society and government, and to the destruction of all the more kind and noble feelings, not only between man and his Maker, but be- tween one man and another. Their origin is darkness, their work destruction, and their end chaos. However unhappy it has been to those who have lived only to advocate such a cause, and to disserve mankind, yet in another sense it is for- 152 ON EVIDENCE, tunate ; since a standing proof is before the world to what length men may go who, by first rejecting all the sources of evidence, at last can disbelieve their own senses, and deny that they have any testimony or evidence that the snow is white, the grass green ; that ice is cold, or the fire hot; and believe, the only thing they must believe, that their own senses, not only of the mind, but of the body, exist only for the purposes of deception. 4. We are not informed of any earlier instance of sceptic lunacy similar to this, than that of Pyrrho, the founder of the Grecian sect of sceptics. According to the testimony of Dio- genes Laertius, " Pyrrho, professed to disbelieve his senses, and to be under no apprehension from any of the objects that affected them. The appearance of a precipice or of a wild beast was nothing to Pyrrho ; at least he said so ; he would not avoid them ; he knew they were nothing at all, or at least that they were not what they seemed to be/' We do not see that this sect was likely to make many converts, whilst the pleasures and pains of the body are connected with the senses, and men generally are disposed to accept the for- mer and avoid the latter, if they can, whether they acknow- ledge that they do this through believing that they have senses or not. Men generally, by this one circumstance, have con- tinued to give proof to the world that they believed their senses, including even such rare specimens of insanity as were found in Descartes, M'alebranche, Hume, and Berke- ley. 5. This comparatively modern scepticism called into success- ful exercise the pens of Father Buffier, Reid, Butler, Beattie, Campbell, Paley, and Stewart. Father Buffier appears to have been the first that successfully taught the important science of Jirst truths in opposition to the career of that scepticism. He finds two great sources from which he derives his first principles; viz: 1. The consciousness we have of our own thoughts. 2. Commonsense, or the faculty, as he explains himself, by which men form judgments on the ordinary ob- jects of their experience, which are not proper subjects of consciousness. The principles of common sense, as given by Buffier, may be thus detailed, ^'l. There are other beings, and other men in the world besides myself." (The statement of this appears to have been necessary, since Descartes refus- ed, until he had first proved, to believe it ; i. e. he could not, as to this matter, trust the intuitive evidence of his own senses.) 2. There is in them something that is called truth, wisdom. ON EVIDENCE. 153 and prudence; and this something is not merely arbitrary. 3. There is in me something that I call intelligence or mind ; and something which is not that intelligence or mind and which is named body ; so that each possesses properties distinct from the other. 4. What is generally said and taught by men in all ages and countries of the world is true. 5. tdll men have not combined to deceive and impose on me. (An axiom cer- tainly, and applicable to a good purpose.) 6. What is not intelligence or mind, cannot produce all the effects of intelli- gence or mind manifestly existing ; neither can a fortuitous jumble of particles of matter form a work of such order, and of such regular motion as a watch, tie likewise mentions three tests by w^hich first truths, or axioms of common sense, maybe distinguished from all others, viz: 1. They are so clear, that they cannot be proved by any thing clearer.* 2. That they have been admitted in all countries, and at all times, with exceedingly few exceptions. 3. They are so strongly imprinted on our minds, that we regulate our conduct by them, in spite of all the speculative refinements of that (pseudo) philosophy, which denies them.f 6. On this subject, Beattie's " Essay on the nature and im- mutability of truth in opposition to sophistry and scepticism," is worthy of the most attentive perusal. His enumeration of the sources of evidence are as follows: 1. Mathematical evidence. 2. The evidence of external sense. 3. The evidence of consciousness. 4. The evidence of memory. 5. The evidence w^hich we have, when from effects, we infer causes. 6. Probable evidence. 7. The evidence of testimony. The sixth class Dr. Beattie divides into 1st, the evidence by which we judge of future events by our past experience from similar events ; and 2d, the evidence of analogy. 7. Intuitive evidence, according to Dr. Campbell, is that which is admitted immediately on a bare attention to the * Aristotle admits, " as true whatever is self-evident, (as well as Euclid,) without seeking to prove it ; nay he affirms that those men who attempt to prove self-evident principles, or who think that such principles may be proved, are ignorant of the nature of proof." — Aristot. Metaphys. lib. 4, cap. 4. t " Traite des premiers Verites, et de la Source des nos Jugemens," par M. Buffier. 154 ON EVIDENCE. ideas under review ; and Deductive, that which is adnriitted mediately, by a comparison with other ideas ; as, 1. Iiituitive Evidence. INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. Mathematical Evidence, which is the result of pure intellection. Consciousness ; and 3. Common Sense, or evidence of I' C 1. cense, ^a. Memory. Deductive evidence founded on the intuitive, is either ^1. 'Whz.i is founded on the axioms of pure intellection. f 1. The knowledge we derive from experience. 2. That from analogy. 3. That from testimony. 2. fVfho.iis founded on Deductive J I the dictates of con- Evidence. I 2.-^ sciousness and com-< II mon sense; or moral i^or probable evidence j 4. From chances- 112.) Evidence is of two kinds / partly probable, partly certain. (Art. Deductive. 1, Intuitive, and 2, INTERROGATORY EXAMINATION ON Chap. VI. Q. 1. What has evidence to do with the matter of a proposition ? page 121, note 1. Q. 2. What are the particulars involved in the consideration of evidence 1 page 123, note 3. Q. 3. If evidence first proceeds from that which testifies, who, or what are they which testify 1 Art. 105. Q. 4. Explain what you mean by testimony. 106. Q. 5. Does testimony always amount to evidence 1 See examples under art. 106 ; as example 4. Q. 6. On page 123, we read '* A killed B, according to the testimony of C ;" is the truth of that proposition proved by evidence ? Q, 7. What is evidence 1 107. Q. 8. Does the book written by Euclid on geometry contain evidence 1 1 07, note 1 . Q. 9. Is it evidence to those who never read it 1 107, note 1. ON EVIDENCE. 155 Q. 10. Is there less of evidence in that book in consequence of its not being read by any one 1 107, note 1. Q. 11.* Does Paley's work on Natural Theology contain evidence relative to NATURAL iiEiiGioif ; and does it contain less evidence on account of its not being read by any one 1 Q. 12.* Does the book, called the Bible, contain evidence relative to re- vealed RELiGioif ; and does it contain less evidence on account of its not being read by any one 1 Q. 13. What may be said to be the faculties of perceiving evidence 1 108. Q. 14. By what faculty is it that you form an idea, or the evidence result- ing from one term 1 108. Q. 15. By what faculty do you perceive the evidence resulting from two terms? 108. Q. 16. By what faculty do you deduce the evidence resulting- from three terms? 108. Q. 17. Do apprehension, judgment, and reasoning express the three facul- ties by which we perceive evidence ] 108. Q. 18. What is assent? 109. Q. 19. What is conviction ? 1 10- Q. 20. State what are the consequences that should result from convic- tion] 111. Q. 21. How many kinds of evidence are there 1 113. CHAP. VII. On hituitive Evidence. (Art. 113.) Intuitive evidence is that which is sufficient to produce immediate conviction or certainty, without the necessity of reasoning. 1. Intuitive evidence is of four kinds ; viz : 1. That of sensation, or perception, 2. That of consciousness, 3. That of memory, 4. That of axioms, or of self-evident truths. 2. Intuitive evidence is that which we have of any truth, * These questions may be omitted to any, if such there can be, who have not read these books. 156 ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE* or fact, which appears at once, through sensation, perception, consciousness, memory, or axioms, so self-evident, that it can- not be made more clear, nor can require demonstration ; and its own light and clearness evinces the want of understand- ing in any one attempting to make plainer that which can- not be 7nade more plain. 3. For example : " 1 see the sun ;" now how is the mathe- matician to demonstrate this, or how am I to demonstrate it mathematically, or by any species of reasoning whatever. If there be such a thing as truth, or truth can speak by me, I can express my conviction of that evidence, by a sentence of affirmation or negation, without any act of comparing or reasoning, or without any need of Euclid or Algebra. 4. Yet mathematicians (so called,) exist, who say, that they will believe nothing they cannot demonstrate, as if the light- ning that glances now out of the corner of that cloud, cannot without demonstration, be allowed to exist, either in itself, or its image in my eye. Mathematicians, that talk in this, or in any similar way, however mathematically sane they may be^ are certainly, if not intellectually and morally 2W5a?2e, at least troubled with a monomania. 5. " I will believe nothing," said a young sceptic riding with a gentleman in a coach in England, ^' that I cannot demon- strate." " Do I understand you rightly, sir," said his compa- nion, " that you will believe nothing that you cannot under- stand and demonstrate ?' "Yes." "Now, sir, will you tell me what is that V^ " A cow.^^ " What has it on its back ?" « Hair." " Of what color." " Red." " And what is that ?" "A sheep." "With what is it covered?" " Wool.'^ "Of what color ?" " White." " Do you believe so." " Yes.'' " But do you understand why that cow is covered with hair, and the sheep with wool ; or why the one is red and the other white ?" " No." " But did you not tell me that you would believe nothing that you could not understand ?" He was si- lent. 6. All over the world is the truth of that scripture verified, it is *' THE FOOL," emphatically the fool, •* that hath said in his heart, there is no God ;" the fool that will not believe his own senses ; the fool that talks about demonstration, or the need of it, to make that plainer which cannot he made more plain ; or craving after dead Euclid to prove the living Bible or moral truth. If such a thing as the very quintessence of folly can exist, it certainly is in him who is emphatically this FOOL. Oiy INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. 157 7. Some speak of intuitive evidence as if there necessarily existed in it a sort of comparison, or ^' a comparison of ideas." So said Hume. " All certainty," says he, " arises from the comparison of ideas, and from the discovery of such relations as are unalterable so long as the ideas continue the same ; but the only relations of this kind are resemblance, proportion in quantity and number, degrees of any quahty, and contra- riety J^ On which subject Dr. Beattie observes, ** there are, according to Mr. Hume, seven^ different kinds of relation, to wit, resemblance, identity, relations of time and place, joro- portion in quantity or number, degrees in any common quality, contrariety, and causation. And by the word relation, he here means that particular circumstance in which we may think proper to compare ideas." 8. It is to be regretted that any more modern writer should have copied any thing from this into his view of intuitive evi- dence. We read in a work on logic recently printed in this country, as follows : " The relation between these objects is sometimes discovered by barely contemplating them with- out reference to any thing else; and sometimes by com- paring them with other objects, to which they have a known relation. The former is simple comparison ; the latter is an act of reasoning." Now, according to this, the " barely con- templating objects without reference to any thing else," is comparison. Again, "that which determines the mind in simple comparison, is called intuitive evidence.^^ Now here we are not told that any thing else is intuitive evidence, but what determines the mind in simple comparison ; yet barely contemplating objects is intuitive evidence : that is, All intuitive evidence is simple comparison. Bare contemplation is intuitive evidence ; therefore, Bare contemplation is simple comparison. This conclusion must certainly follow, provided that the pre- mises are correct. The major proposition, however, requires examination, for if it can be proved that all intuitive evi- dence is simple comparison, and something more or different from simple comparison, it is of the same character with the false proposition, " All animals are birds," And, therefore, it cannot, from a false premiss, follow that bare contemplation is comparison. * Therefore Hume, in this, is not consistent, speaking of only four relation- ships in one place, and of seven in another. O 158 ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. 9. Dr. Beattie, refering to the affirmation of Hume, that " all certainty arises from a comparison of ideas," says, " I cannot admit that all certainty arises from a comparison of ideas. I am certain of the existence of myself, and of the other things that affect my senses: I am certain, that * what- ever is, is ;' and yet I cannot conceive that any comparison of ideas is necessary to produce these convictions in my mind. Perhaps I cannot speak of them without using words expres- sive of relation ; but the simple act or perception of the under- standing by which I am conscious of them, implies not any comparison that I can discover. If it did, then the simplest intuitive truth requires proof, or illustration, at least, before it can be acknowledged as truth by the mind; which I presume will not be found warranted by experience. Whether others are conscious of making such a comparison, before they yield assent to the simplest intuitive truth, I know not ; but this I know, that my mind is often conscious of certainty, where no such comparison has been made by me. I acknowledge, in- deed, that no certain truth can become an object of science, till it be expressed in words ; that, if expressed in words, it must assume the form of a proposition, being either affirmative or negative, and imply a comparison of the thing or subject with that quality or circumstance which is affirmed or denied to belong to, or agree with it : and, therefore, I acknowledge that in science all certainty may be said to arise from a com- parison of ideas. But the generality of mankind believe many things as certain, which they never thought of expressing in words. An ordinary man believes, that himself, his family, his horse, and cattle exist ; but in order to produce this belief in his mind, is it necessary that he compare those objects with the general idea of existence, or non-existence, so as to discern their agreement with the one, or disagreement with the other ? I cannot think it ; at least, if he has ever made such a comparison, it must have been without his knowledge ; for I am convinced that, if we were to ask him the question, he would not understand us. I apprehend that our author has not enumerated all the relations which, when discovered, give rise to certainty. I am certain that I am the same per- son to-day, I was yesterday. This, indeed, our author (Hume) denies. I cannot help it ; I am certain, notwithstanding ; and I flatter myself there are not many persons in the world who would think this sentiment of mine a paradox. I say, then, I am certain, that I am the same person to-day I was yester- day. Now the relation expressed in this proposition is not ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. 159 resemblance, nor proportion in quantity and number ; nor de- grees of any common quality ; nor contrariety ; it is a rela- tion different from all these ; it is identity or sameness." (But where, it may be added, is comparison here 1 How can a thing or being be compared with itself? The same thing with the same thing ?) " That London is contiguous to the Thames, is a proposition which many of the most sensible peo- ple in Europe hold to be certainly true ; and yet the relation expressed in it is none of these four, which our author sup- poses to be the sole proprietors of certainty, ^^ 10. Should I, by intuitive evidence, be conscious of my own existence, and express that consciousness, by the proposition "1 exist y^^ or "/am existent, ^^ it is to be acknowledged that this consciousness, when expressed, affords two terms, or two ideas, viz : " I" and " existent. " But do I proceed to obtain an adequate idea of each of these terms respectively, and then to institute a comparison, or discover some relationship be- tween them, before I affirm, "I exist?" Certainly not, the conviction is instantaneous, without time for, or need of, any other act. It is pure mental affirmation, and nothing more. No- thing exceeds in motion the celerity of light, and^nothing is conveyed more rapidly than intuitive truth. When either of them comes there is no need of going to Euclid, to compari- sons, or to Hume's seven different relationships. The captain in the cabin of a ship at sea, desirous of taking a lunar ob- servation, says to his mate, " go on deck, and tell me if you seethe moon." The mate, as soon as he gets on deck, ex- claims, " I see the moon." The captain, somewhat sceptical, must have previous demonstration that his mate saw the moon, and, therefore, instead of taking up his quadrant to take the observation, calls his mate down for previous examination. "Now tell me," says he, "if you are a man of sincerity, the truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth ; I want to know the whole, not a part, of what you perceived, or were conscious of, when you said, */ see the moon^ together with all your thoughts, whether of comparison or relationship at the same time ?" The mate can only reply, by saying, " I told you the whole, when I said, * I see the moon.' " But were you conscious of nothing else, or did you compare or refer to all or to any of the seven relationships % whether of resemblance, identity, relation of time and place, proportion, degrees, con- trariety or causation, before you were convinced that you saw the moon?" We might suppose that this mate in common with every man of sense, would reply, *'I told you the whole 160 OS INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. of what I in any way perceived, or of what I was conscious, when I said, I see the moon ; neither had I time to make any comparison, whether to compare myself to the moon^ or my faculty of sight to the moon, or to refer to any of the seven blue lights, you mention, taken out of Hume's dark lantern." 11. When a man expresses to another, the whole, not a part of all and every thing that takes place in his mind, when in- tuitive evidence, as to any single object, is perceived by any of the faculties, that expression is a proposition of simple affir- ination or negation, without any comparison whatever. The proposition is neither interrogative nor imperative, but indicative, simply affirming or denying. It is as if truth itself then had a tongue, declaring in the simplest manner possible, *' it is" or " it is not ; *< I see" or "I see not," " I remember," or *'I remember not" — and that declaration expresses the whole, and every thing, act, or consciousness, simply connected with that truth, of which the testifier, at the time, was sensible ; and the only cases wherein intuitive evidence is concerned with comparison, is either in that afibrded by axioms referring to two ideas, or to two ideas where an axiom is not concerned. But the general nature expressed by intuitive, is intimated by this epithet, which is derived from the Latin verb, intueor, that signifies simply, to look at, an act more of contempla- tion than com,parison; therefore, it is not true that '^all intuitive evidence is simple comparison" (Art. 114.) The first kind of intuitive evidence, is the evi- dence of SENSATION. 1. Fortunate is it for the welfare of man, and for that of the world at large, that few men exist, have existed, or ever will exist, but that believe the testimony of their own senses, or that of sensation. So far indeed from being not disposed to believe it, they are generally more inclined to trust to its tes- timony than to that of any other. The five senses, and the faculty of perceiving their testimony, have existed in the world now, for near six thousand years; had they all this time been deceivers and their testimony false, how many egregious blunders must have been the inevitable consequence ! It is strange in this case, that amongst the many myriads that have existed in this and every preceding age, that have either inhabited houses, cultivated farms, planted vineyards, watched their flocks, fought in battles, travelled by land, sailed by sea, or navigated the world around, that none have made the brilliant discoveries that it was the peculiar fortune of Berke- ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. 161 ley and his compeers to do ; that the five senses a man has, and that all men have had, from the foundation of the world to the present time, have been in each, and in all cases, a conspiracy of five, in the noble and worthy system of lies and deception, practised now, without detection, except by Berkeley and a few more, for near six thousand years. And whether men are disposed to believe their senses now or not, may be easily tested. Let us go with all the dialect and suasive powers of Berkeley to that man parched with burning thirst, and going to quench it with that glass of cool water ; and say, " My dear sir, let that alone, for aught you know, or ever can know to the contrary, it is nothing but hydrogen gas, sulphuric acid, or part of the moon's atmosphere." If he will not believe, we have another chance of making a con- vert — it is of that man nearly famished with hunger. Now let us say when he is just sitting down, with eyes sparkling over that roast beef and plumb-pudding, " My dear fellow, let all that alone, put it away, it is nothing, for aught you know, but an alligator, or an Egyptian mummy, an ourang outang, or the tail of the sea serpent." Failing of success here, we repair to that avaricious old gentleman about to take up that silver dollar or golden eagle that glistens on the table, and say, " My good sir, take my advice, let that alone, for aught you know, or ever can know to the contrary, it is nothing but a red hot coal, a boiling kettle, a Chinese Man-, darin, or Munchausen himself." With how many men, placed in similar situations, out of as many as the Chinese empire contains, should we prevail ? (Art. 115.) The second kind of intuitive evidence is the evidence of consciousness. 1. Nothing more suitable on this subject can be offered than what has been said by Dr. Beattie. " By attending to what passes in my mind, / knowy not only that it exists, but also that it exerts certain powers of action and perception ; which, on account either of a diversity in their objects, or of a dif- ference in their manner of operating, I consider as distinct faculties ;• and which I find it expedient to distinguish by dif- ferent names, that I may be able to speak of them so as to be understood." (see art. 108, note 1 and seq.) Thus I am con- scious that at one time I exert memory, at another time ima- gination : sometimes I believe, sometimes I doubt : the per- formance of certain actions, and the indulgence of cer- tain affections, arc attended with an agreeable feeling of a o3 162 ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. peculiar kind which 1 call moral approbation ; different ac- tions and affections excite the opposite feeding, of moral disapprobation : to relieve distress, I feel to be meretorious and praiseworthy ; to pick a pocket, I know to be blameable, and worthy of punishment: I am conscious that some actions are in my power, and that others are not; and that when I neglect to do what I ought to do, and can do, I deserve to be punished ; of all these sentiments I am as conscious, and as certain, as of my own existence. / cannot prove that I feel them, neither to myself, nor others ; but that I do really feel them, is as evident to me as demonstration could make it. I cannot prove in regard to my moral feelings, that they are conformable to any extrinsic and eternal relations of things; but I know that my constitution necessaril)^ determines me to believe them just and genuine, even as it determines me to be- lieve that I myself exist, and that things are as my external senses represent them. An expert sophister might puzzle me with words, and propose difficulties I could not solve ; but he might as well attempt to convince me that I do not exist, as that I do not feel what I am conscious I do feel. And if he could induce me to suspect that I may be mistaken, what standard of truth could he propose to me, more evident, and of higher authority in these matters, than my own feelings? Shall I believe his testimony, and disbelieve my own sensa- , tions ? Shall I admit his reasons, because I cannot confute them, although common sense tells me they are false? Shall I suffer the ambiguities of artifical language to prevail against the clear, the intelligible, the irresistible voice of nature ?" 2. "Let it not be thought, that these objects and faculties of internal sensation are things too evanescent to be attended to, or that their evidence is too weak to produce a steady and well-grounded conviction. They are more necessary to our happiness than even the objects of external sense ; yea, they are no less necessary to our existence. What can be of great- er consequence to man than his moral sentiments, his reason, his memory ? What more interesting, than to know, whether his notions of duty and of truth be the dictates of his nature, that is, the voice of God ? What is it to which a wise man will pay more attention, than to his reason and conscience, those divine monitors, whereby he is to judge even of religion itself? The generality of mankind, however, ignorant of the distinctions and explanations of their internal powers, do yet by their conduct declare, that they feel their influence, and acknowledge their authenticity. Every instance of their ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. 163 being governed by a principle of moral obligation is a proof of this. They believe an action to be lawful in the sight of God, when they are conscious of a sentiment of lawfulness attend- ing the performance of it : they believe a certain mode of conduct to be incumbent on them in certain circumstances, be- cause a notion of duty arises in their mind, when they con- template that conduct in relation to those circumstances. ' I ought to be greatful for a favor received,' — why ? * because my conscience tells me so.' ' How do you know that you ought to do that of which your conscience enjoins the performance V ^ lean give no further reason for it; but Ifeel, that such is my duty.' Here the investigation must stop, or, if carried a little further it must return to this point: "I know that I ought to do what my conscience enjoins, because God is the author of my constitution; and I obey his will, when I act according to the principles of my conscience. Why do you obey the will of God 1 Because it is my duty. How do you know that ? because my conscience tells me so," &c. Here, as Dr. Beattie observes, the investigation must stop, i. e. so far as natural reli- gion goes, without the higher evidence of revealed precept. (Art. 116.) The third kind of intuitive evidence, is the evi- dence of MEMORY. 1. Suppose we had no memory, no such source of intuitive evidence as this, what would be the consequence ? Then all that I had done or seen, or experienced yesterday, or for months or years before, would be clean swept off the tablet of record, into the oblivious resjions of an everlasting Lethe. Nay, all that I had learned yesterday, or for months or years before, by intuitive or deductive evidence, by demonstration, by Eu- clid, or by Algebra, would be clean gone, no one knows whi- ther. I was composing a book last night, and had twenty ideas before me, but twelve o'clock struck, and I was compelled to go to bed, hoping that the said twenty ideas, which I thought I had well caged, would be forthcoming in the morning ; but how am I mistaken ! I have lost my memory. The twenty birds have flown: the cage is searched, but nothing is there! And with all my seeking, and care and sorrow, nothing is to be found ; I have all to do over again ; but the said twenty I shall never cage again ; and thus I must go on until another twelve o'clock comes, rising morning after morning a mere va- cant blank. 2. Ah ! but memory lives I And its testimony, its serious testimony, is evidence, and needs no demonstration. Even a 164 ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. child knows this. Tell that boy that was whipt yesterday, and remembers it yet, that he must not believe this, for me- mory is fallacious, and nothing is to be believed without de- monstration*. What would even the understanding of a child think of your sagacity ? Yes, memory lives ; and its testimo- ny is accredited, as it testifies to me, to you, to all. Without it laws would be useless ; testimony or witnesses before a court not to be had ; juries would have nothing to do ; and the senr tence of a judge a nonentity. 3. If memory lives, it lives in conscience. And what does conscience say? Let conscience tell the tale, and that by memory's voice. What says the memory, the con- science of the man, that knowingly, designedly injured his neighbour, his property, his wife, his daughter, his servant, or any thing that was his? and is aware that the circum- stances of the injured man have been declining ever since, and he in consequence fast sinking into poverty ? Ah ! but what says the evidence of meinory in him, who pursued with " mur- d'rous thought,"him, once his friend, to that secret place where he thought no eye saw ! Reviembers he not, how his victim, when in his power, first begged for life, were it only for his wife and family's sake ? Does he not remember by whose hand it was by which first the fatal blow was struck ? Do not his very ears yet hear his piercing cry ; his eyes yet see his quivering limbs, his death's last struggle ? Staid he not by the corpse disfigured with crimson streams till the glass of death glazed its eyes; till he who was in health and peace an hour ago " was minish'd from the sons of men ?" Has he not since and many a day after passed the cottage of the widow, and seen her sinking into poverty and despair ? Heard he not the children's cry, " My father, my father, would to God that I had died in thy stead !" What then is m^emory in that man in whom its evidence is as a burning fire, and is aware that he must feel its quenchless agony for ever ; so long as his own identity shall last? Needs he demonstration when that is for ever too late ? Talk to him about it, and the voice of intui- tive evidence within him, louder than thunder, would laugh your impertinence to scorn. " O treach'rous conscience ! while she seems to sleep On rose and myrtle, lull'd with syren song, While she seems nodding o'er her chaige to drop, On headlong appetite the slacken'd rein, And give us up to license, unrecall'd, Unmark'd, see from behind her secret stand, The sly informer minutes every fault ; ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. 165 And her dread diary with horror fills. Not the gross act alone employs her pen ; She reconnoitres Fancy's airy band, A watchful foe I the formidable spy List'ning, o'erhears the whispers of our camp, And steals our embryos of iniquity. Thus with indulgence most severe, she treats Us spendthrifts of inestimable time ; Unnoted ; notes each moment misapplied ; On leaves more durable than brass, Writes our whole history, which Death shall read In ev'ry pale delinquent's private ear. — Young. (Art. 117.) The fourth kind of intuitive evidence, is that of AXIOMS or SELF-EVIDENT TRUTHS. 1. An axiom is a sentence expressing a self-evident truth* Though an axiom is, in itself, a self-evident truth, yet even this, self-evident as it is, may not be such until the terms which compose it are understood ; but when they are, their agreement is so plain, that not only the conviction of the truth they express, is, in every rational mind, inevitable, but also so . clear, that any attempt at demonstration, were it possible, would be unnecessary ; for this attempt itself refers to the axiom, "It is impossible to make plainer, that which cannot be made more plain^^ 2. In this sense, an axiom is analogous to what we have said of evidence. An axiom or evidence may be an axiom or evi- dence to A, B, and C ; why? because they are able and willing to understand it ; but not to D, because either he does not understand the terms, and therefore cannot perceive the agreement, or his faculties have not been in healthy and efficient exercise to enable him to comprehend either terms, their agreement, or any thing about it. But that is no reason that it should not be an axiom or evidence. It will remain unchangeably and eternally what it is, an axiom or evidence, notwithstanding D's unbelief or want of comprehension to understand the terms. For these are the glorious and corre- lative attributes of truth. For what is truth now, ever has, and ever will be, immutably, eternally truth, not- withstanding all the fogs of ignorance, the mists of unbelief, the clouds of scepticism, and the miasma of dissipation, to the contrary. 3. Though the terms of an axiom may sometimes require explanation, yet their agreement requires no proof, for as this is intuitively evident, it admits no medium more clear or certain than itself. If it admit of proof clearer than itself, let 166 ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. US try, and take for trial, the following axiom, *' the whole (W) is equal to all its parts," (A, B, C. ) AH the parts are equal to W, A, B, C, are all the parts, A, B, C, are equal to W. Of course this is a proof of a proof, and another proof be- sides, that it is impossible to make plainer that which can- not be made more plain. The folly of attempting any such thing was known as far back, at least, as Aristotle, yet that honest heathen, Aristotle, ignorantly as he has been censured by those that never understood him, had not only more honesty but more sense, than many of the modern apes of what they call, forsooth, philosophy. 4. Some have had the hope that the happy day would come when axioms could be made more plain, and that all and everyone of them might be reduced to identical propositions! Now, what are identical propositions? They are such as these; " sugar is sugar *^ ''salt is salt,^^ *^ the same thing is the sam>e thing^^ Blessed philosophy this! The sceptics millenium of identical propositions I So then we must wait before we admit one particle of truth, until so much sunshine shall come as to enable us to make the grand discovery, that the same thing is the same thing ! ! But still even this would not be sufficient, for the glory of the Pyrrhonists was, that only one thing was certain ! What was that 1 " That every proposition, axiom or identical, was uncertain^^ consequently, with them only one thing was certain, which was, that it was uncertain, that A was A, or B was B. But they contradicted the declaration by their own practice, since they would neither run into fire nor water, though they professed ignorance that the one would burn, and the other would drown them. 5. " We are convinced by a demonstration," says Dr. Beat- tie, '^because our constitution is such that we must be con- vinced by it, and we believe a self-evident axiom, (for the same reason) because our constitution is such that we must believe it. You ask, why I believe what is self-evident ? I may as well ask why you believe what is demonstrated ? Nei- ther question admits of an answer ; or rather, to both ques- tions the answer is the same, namely, because I must believe it." See Beattie, part 1, chap. 2. An axiom, therefore, is a complete proof as well as a demonstration ; and to attempt to demonstrate an axiom, or to prove a proof, is as ridiculous as to wait to see a second sun rise to enable us to see if the first ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. 167 shines in the heavens ; or to call the maid to bring the second candle to help you to see if the first is shining on your table. But this is the depth of foolery into which mathematical scep- ticism has already sunk, in talking about proving moral, or all truth, by mathematical demonstration ; the light of a candle to see if the sun is shining P' 6. In the mind's contemplation of an axiom there is some- thing analogous to the properties of the eye. Though, of a landscape, the eye can take in, more or less distinctly, a large extent, yet there is only one point, that the eye sees distinct- ly at the same time. Standing on the top of a hill, my friend says, ** are those two creatures in that distant field, the sanye kind of animal ?' I look at the one, and then at the other, and find them to be different. Now here are two objects, and two movements of the eye. So in an axiom there are two ideas, with which the mind acts to produce assent or dis- sent. This is comparison ; and the evidence of axioms is a case wherein, in intuitive evidence, comparison is necessary. The intuitive evidence of sensation, consciousness and memory, and the whole of every mental act and thing felt or implied there- in, may be fully expressed by a proposition of simple affirma- tion or negation ; as, I see, I am conscious that I know or re- member A ; or I do not see, am not conscious that I know or remember A. But the evidence of axioms implies two ideas and comparison, as in 1 2 The whole is equal to the sum of all its parts. 1 2 rvA-^ f. ^ ^ The whole is greater than any of its parts. 1 2 r ' % iN'on-existence agrees not with existence of the same thing at the same time. INTERROGATORY EXAMINATION, ON Chap. VII. Q. 1. What is intuitive evidence 1 Art. 113. Q. 2. How many kinds of intuitive evidence are there 1 113. I, 168 ON INTUITIVE EVIDENCE. Q. 3. What do you mean by the evidence of sensation 1 1 14. Q. 4. What may be understood by the evidence of consciousness ? 115. Q. 5. Is the evidence of memory one of the kinds of intuitive evidence ? 1 16. Q. 6. Explain the evidence of axioms. 117. Q. 7. What is an axiom 7 117. L Q. 8. Can an axiom be made plainer than it is, or demonstrated 1 117. 3. CHAP. VIII. Deductive Evidence. (Art. 118.) Deductive Evidence is that which is express- ed in a conclusion correctly deduced from premises known or admitted to be true. 1. We have already observed that evidence may be ex- pressed by an affirmative or negative proposition ; but before we pronounce that proposition, we have evidence, without which propositions are useless. A single proposition may be the ex- pression of either intuitive or deductive evidence. If the latter, it is deduced from others preceding it ; and in this sense a de- ductive proposition, which is a conclusion, might be considered to be rather the property of syllogism : but as a syllogism ex- ists not without the materials which compose it, and single pro- positions are those materials, we shall not defer seeking after the materials until after the house is built 2. Deductive evidence, reasoning or demonstration, is found- ed on intuitive evidence. Reasoning, by which deductive evi- dence is obtained, begins with two ideas expressed by an intui- tive proposition, or by one previously established or demonstrat- ed, which were originally intuitive, until we obtain the third Almost all the propositions of science, most of those of the arts and of business, and those propositions by which the mind re- ceives conviction, by the exercise of its faculties, are of this 3. It is affirmed to me that the monument A is higher than the monument B. I doubt this ; I have seen them both, i. e. I have had intuitive evidence that they both exist, but I have not intuitive evidence that the altitude of the one is greater ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. 169 than that of the other, or that they both are equal. The one is ten miles from the other, and I cannot carry the monument A to the monument B, to compare the two ideas, which their juxta-posltion would afford. In this difficulty, I remember the axiom, " Things equal to the same third thing are equal to one another." I therefore take this '^ third thing," the measure C, or make it precisely equal to the height of B. I then take the "third thing," C, to A ; and find C and A per- fectly equal ; consequently, I can reason or say, C is equal to A, Bis equal to C ; therefore B is equal to A. This is deductive evidence ; or evidence deduced from three intuitive acts, viz: 1. Things equal to the same third thing are equal to one another. 2d. The intuitive conviction that A is equal to the third thing C ; 3d. The intuitive conviction that B is equal to the same third, or C ; therefore the deduc- tive evidence is that B is equal to A. 4. Deductive evidence involves a field as unlimited as the subjects which can be comprehended by the understanding. A conclusion derived by it forms a premiss, a second may be ob- tained the same way, or from an axiom of intuitive evidence ; these two may constitute the premises of another act of reasoning, giving another conclusion of deductive evidence, and thus the process may be continued, on indubitable pre- mises, through a series of indefinite extent, filling a volume, as Paley's Evidences of Christianity, or composing a whole treatise on science. Thus let it be granted to me that '^ all thinking beings are spirits;" that "spirits have not the pro- perties of matter, as extension ;" here are two postulata grant- ed. I may from these two derive Jive conclusions of deductive evidence; thus, 1. All thinking beings are spirits. The mind is a thinking being ; therefore The mind is a spirit, ^ 2. Spirits have no extension. The mind is a spirit ; therefore The mind has no extension. 170 ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. 3. Things having no extension are indivisible. The mind has no extension ; therefore The mind is indivisible. Thmgs indivisible are indissoluble. The mind is indivisible; therefore The mind is indissoluble. Things indissoluble are immortal. The mind is indissoluble ; therefore The mind is immortal. The mind is immortal, or shall exist for ever ! 5. Thus the process by which an ultimate conclusion of de- ductive evidence is obtained, may sometimes involve an ex- tensive series, or several acts of reasoning. The w^hole of this may sometimes rapidly pass in the mind from one conclusion to another, without the necessity, on every occasion, of formally stating every premiss. Nevertheless, when legitimately con- ducted, the ultimate conclusion will be correct. A gentleman in Yorkshire was disposed to doubt of the existence of his own soul, simply because he could not see it. In the course of his evening's walk, he came to the lock of a canal, and stood to contemplate the gate by which it was enclosed, and with- stood the pressure of a considerable mass of water. He viewed the machinery by which the two parts of the ponder- ous gate were opened or shut ; the peculiar position of these parts when closed, not at right angles with the direction of the canal, but at an angle or position towards the point of pres- sure, such that the greater the pressure the more firmly were they closed. He inquired who had done this? Mr. L. the en- gineer. But who is Mr. L.? is he body? But body cannot study mechanics, hydraulics, or hydrostatics. And here is a VISIBLE proof that whatever has done this must have under- stood the principles which these sciences involve. These gates which / see are an expression of science, and body can- not study science ; and if not body, it must be mind ; but where is that mind ? I do not see Mr. L. or his mind here ; nevertheless he has left here a proof of the existence of mind ; that proof 1 can see, feel, and even hear the roaring, the dash- ing of water against the gates, which, notwithstanding, during every hour of the day and night, they withstand. Mr. L. is therefore mind, though neither Mr. L. nor his mind can I now ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. 171 see. But let me continue this thought. What was that statue I saw in the cathedral last week 1 Was it not the expression of mind? What but mind, something that understood the form, the figure of a man, the position of the muscles accord- ing to the attitude assumed, could have produced it ? What produced that painting, which is acknowledged to be the chef-d'oeuvre of the art? Was it merely the hand of the painter, the pencil or the paint ? That is only body, and bo- dies are common to all men ; but not one man in a thousand, nor all the bodies in the world could produce this, any more than all the bodies in the world could make a watch. Thus that mansion, exhibiting such architectural design, such ele- gancy of taste, every accommodation and convenience, in situation or arrangement, suited to foresee?! wants or plea- sures, is an expression of mind. If so, then all that I see in the city or the town, its buildings, churches, mansions, cathedrals, temples, are the proceeds of art, and art is the production of mind, of previous thought and design. And though that mind is not seen here or there, yet here are they which testify by visible, audible and tangible testimony that mind exists in them, in me, in all capable of thought or design. I overcome my doubt, and perceive that ultimately truth and victory will be SYNONYMOUS terms, and all that oppose it will sink into everlasting contempt. I now write down the sum deduced from my evening reflections in this short compass. Whatever designs is mind. I design ; therefore, I am mind. 6. By a similar process, we may obtain the deductive evi^ dence, the synopsis of which is expressed in the following short compass. Vl^hat acts necessarily is not an agent, but an instrument controlled by another. Necessity acts necessarily ; therefore Necessity is not an agent, but an instrument controlled by another. Whatever acts from another necessitating it to act, implies something antece- dent to itself. Necessity acts from another necessitating it to act ; therefore Necessity implies something antecedent to itself. Whatever acts by regular and consistent laws, implies an intelligent agent enacting those laws. Nature acts by regular and consistent laws ; therefore Nature implies an intelligent agent enacting those laws. 1'72 ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. That which never formed an orga nized being, never was a creator. Chemical affinity never formed an organized being ; therefore Chemical affinity never was a creator. Whatever never produced one new plant or animal, never was a creator. Perpetual appetency* never produced one new plant or animal ; therefore Perpetual appetency never was a creator. An hypothesis countenanced by no known facts in nature, has no claims to rationality. Atheism is countenanced by no known facts in nature ; therefore Atheism has no claims to rationality. All things that are now what they always have been, deny the existence of casual formations. Men, animals and plants are now what they always have been ; therefore Men, animals and plants deny the existence of casual formation. Whatever cannot show an example of the first rudiments of organization, or spontaneous generation, cannot disprove the pre-existenee of an intelli- gent first cause. Atheism cannot show an example of the first rudiments of organization, or spontaneous generation ; therefore Atheism cannot disprove the pre-existence of an intelligent first cause. That an unthinking, undesigning being should produce intelligent and design- ing beings, is an absurdity. Chance is an unthinking, undesigning being ; therefore that Chance should produce intelligent and designing beings is an absurdity. What cannot produce that which requires less energy, never could produce what requires greater. Chance never built a cottage, which requires less energy ; therefore Chance never could produce (the world) what requires greater energy. What could not draw a portrait, never could make a man. Chance never could draw a portrait ; therefore Chance never could make a man. - * By this, the atheist means what he calls " the eternal effort," comprising the following three absurdities, viz. 1, the power of nothing to create some- thing- ; 2, of an imperfect thing to create a perfect thing ; 3, of a senseless thing an intelligent thing. ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. 173 The structure of achromatic telescopes proves the pre-existent knowledge of the laws of light, in the inventor. The structure of the eye is the structure of an achromatic telescope ; therefore The structure of the eye proves the pre-existent knowledge of the laws of light in the inventor : (i. e. God.) Whatever combines inimitable complication of machinery, could not, in millions of ages, have been produced by any fortuitous combinations of matter, but must have had a designing cause. The eye combines inimitable complication of machinery ; therefore The eye could not, in millions of ages, have been produced by any fortuitous combination of matter, but must have had a designing cause. (Art. 119.) Deductive Evidence is of two kinds, Mathe- matical and MORAL. (Art. 120.) Mathematical Evidence is that which is de- duced from axioms or self-evident truths relative to number or quantity. ' 1. Mathematical evidence is of two kinds, intuitive and deductive. Mathematical Evidence is intuitive, as in the case of axioms, (see Art. 117,) when from the YHTy nature of the ideas they contain, it appears, at first view, that they must necessarily agree or disagree. Mathematical evidence is deductive, when the conclusions established are deduced from axioms, from postulata, (or truth, generally as clear as axioms, the granting of which is demanded,) or from some other con- clusion or conclusions, previously demonstrated and admitted to be true. This species of mathematical evidence again is divisible into two kinds, the direct and the indirect. When a conclusion is infered from principles which render it neces- sarily true, the demonstration is direct. When by supposing a given proposition false, we are necessarily led into an absur- dity, its contradictory is infered to be true, which is called in- direct. 2. " All mathematical proof is founded on axioms or propo- sitions, the co?itraries of which are inconceivable. And this sort of proof seems to be peculiar to the sciences that treat of quantity and number ; and therefore, in no other science is the mathematical method of proof to be expected. For, in the other sciences, in most of them at least, truth and its contrary are equally conceivable.^'' So says Mr. Andrews ; does he mean, that in every case, that which is contrary to p2 174 ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. truth is conceivable to be true 7 We know that an eye may be so diseased that a man may fancy that the grass is yellow, that a horse is green, or that a tall thistle nodding by moon- light, is a ghost : such an eye requires the oculist. Mr. An- drews proceeds to say, "that Julius Caesar died a natural death is easy to be conceived." Maniacs, certainly, believe many strange things, as well as the man that believed he was made of glass. But whoever was determined to disbelieve that testimony to which the world assents that Caesar died by assassination in the Senate House. Ifcannot be proved mathe- matically it is true, and it would be ridiculous to attempt it ; yet, for reasons no better than this some talk as if there was a superiority in mathematical reasoning. There is certainty in it, it is true ; but is there certainty in nothing else ? *' We may conceive," says he, " that the sun, after setting to-night will nev^er appear again, or that any particular man will never die," (as Paracelsus did ;) " and yet we consider death as what must inevitably happen to every man, and the rising of the sun to-morrow so certain, that no rational being can doubt of it. Though therefore the mathematical method of proof is to be found in the mathematical sciences only, yet satisfactory proof may be found in any other science : and is actually found in every part of knowledge that deserves the name of science." 3. Mathematical reasoning is " a successive comparison of every pair of ideas, from the first to the last, or from the idea w^hich forms the subject of the proposition to the predicate ; and in demonstration every comparison is intuitively certain. When these ideas are found to agree the demonstration is finished. For example, in the 47th proposition (a conclusion,) of the first book of Euclid, the truth to be established is, that in a right angled triangle, the square of the side opposite to the right angle is equal in quantity to the sum of the squares of the other txuo sides. The square opposite to the right angle is the subject, the sum of the two other squares is the predicate, and the idea of the extent of the first square is to be compared with the idea of the sum of the other two squares. Argument I. The first step is to prove that G A C* is one straight line, and H A B another, in order to lay a foundation for demonstrating that the triangle F B C is equal to half the square F A, and the triangle A B D equal to half the parallelogram B L. II . The next step is to prove the triangle A B 1) equal to the triangle F BC. III. The third step is to prove the triangle A B D equal to half the parallel- ogram B L and the triangle F B C equal to half the square F A, and hence to infer the equality of the square F A to the parallelogram B L. * See the figure in Euclid's Elements. . ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. 175 IV. Three similar steps are necessary to find the square A K equal to the parallelogram C L : and hence to infer the equality of the whole square B E, to the two squares F A and A K, which establishes the agreement of ihe sub- ject and predicate of the proposition." In this process there are no less than six capital steps, each including subor- dinate steps, or twelve subordinate steps in all, which with the former are equal to eighteen intermediate ideas. (Art. 121.) Moral evidence is that which is deduced from axioms or self-evident truths, and conclusions established on correct premises relative to facts and conduct. 1. Moral evidence in the whole extent in which some take it, has been made to include probable testimon)^; that is, the day has been made to be the night, or the night the day. 2. The valuable remarks of Dr. Beattie on this subject, claim attention. *' That my body exists, and is endued with a thinking, active and permanent principle, which I call the soul ; — that the material world hath an existence ; — that the men, beasts, houses, and mountains, we see and feel around us, are not imaginary, but real and material beings, and such in respect of shape and tangible magnitude, as they appear to our senses ; I am not only conscious that I believe, but also certain, that such is the nature of these things ; and that thus far at least, in regard to the nature of these things, an omnis- cient and infallible being cannot think me mistaken. Of these truths I am so certain, that I scruple not to pronounce every being in an error who is of a contrary sentiment concerning them. For suppose an intelligent creature, an angel for in- stance, to believe that there are not in the universe any such things as this solar system, this earth, these mountains, houses, animals, this being whom I call myself; could I, by any effort, bring myself to believe that his opinion is a true one '\ It is impossible and inconceivable. My understanding intimates, that such an opinion would as certainly be false, as that two and two are equal to ten, or that things equal to one and the same third are unequal to one another. So long as this solar sys- tem remains unannihilated, and my intellect undepraved, there is not a geometrical axiom more true, or more evi- dent to me, than that this solar system, and all the objects above mentioned, do exist ; there is not a geometrical axi- om that has any better title to be accounted a principle of huw^an knowledge ; there is not a geometrical axiom against which it is more absurd, more unreasonable^ more unphilosophical, to argue. 176 ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. 3. ^' That snow is white, fire hot, gold yellow, and sugar sweet," (how are these to be mathematically demonstrated?) *' we believe to be certainly true. These bodies affect our eyes, touch, and palate, in a peculiar manner; and we have no reason to think that they affect the organs of different men in a different way ; on the contrary, we believe with full assurance, founded on sufficient reason, that they affect the senses of all men in the same manner. 4. " Of moral truth, we cannot bring ourselves to think that the Deity's notions (pardon the expression) are contrary to ours. If we believe him omniscient and infallible, can we also believe that, in his sight, cruelty, injustice, and ingrati- tude, are worthy of reward and praise, and the opposite vir- tues of blame and punishment ? It is absolutely impossible. The one belief destroys the other. Common sense declares that a being possessed of perfect knowledge can no more en- tertain such a sentiment, than I, with my eyes open, can just now avoid seeing the light. If a created being were to think that virtue which we think vice, and that vice which we think virtue, what would be our notions of his intelligence ? Should we not, without hesitation, pronounce him irrational, and his opinion an absurdity ? That any being should think in this manner, and yet not think wrong, is to us as perfectly inconceivable as that the same thing should, at the same time, be both true and false. 5. " Those who will not allow any truth to be self-evident, except what has all the characteristics of a geometrical axiom, are much mistaken. It would be easy to reduce intuitive certainties into classes, but this is not necessary on the present occasion. We are here treating of the nature and immuta- bility of truth, as perceived by human faculties. Whatever intuitive proposition man, by the law of his nature, must be- lieve as certain, or as probable, is, in regard to him, certain or probable truth; and must constitute a part of human knowledge, and remain unalterably the same, as long as the human constitution remains unaltered. And we must often repeat, that he who attempts to disprove such intuitive truth, or to make men sceptical in regard to it, atts a part as in- consistent with sound reasoning, and as effectually subversive of human knowledge, as if he attempted to disprove truths which he knew to be agreeable to the eternal and necessary relations of things." 6. Thus thought Dr. Beattie, and so thinks every man whose mind is not fractional, but, at least, a.n integral qua-n- ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. 177 titj. Some, however, give the precedency to mathematical demonstration ; but that is, for no better reason than some such as the following. Mr. X plus Y says, " I intend to in- struct my son in the principles of mathematics, mechanics, &c. ; but as he is only eight years of age, and, of course, a little boi/, and cannot, therefore, form adequate ideas af ab- stract quantities, I shall supply him with visible, tangible symbols of ^e«/ squares, triangles, circles, solid cubes, cylin- ders, cones and their sections ; now these he can see, feel, by bodily sense, whether his mind be integral or not ; he can turn them over, place and arrange them in every visible, tan- gible way, for he is but a boy^ Very well, let all boys, then, whether of eight or ^//y years of age, begin with things, which if not visible and tangible, at least refer to things which are visible and tangible, and continue to imagine that all moral truth is beyond their comprehension, merely because it is not visible and tangible ; and that, therefore, they can form no ideas of virtue, vice, justice, cruelty, mercy, nor of any relations betw^een them, nor appreciate Him, who is the unclouded sun of eternal truth. Pulmonary consumptions are serious enough, but for the mind to wane into such a narrow contracted state as this, implies a condition of mental wretchedness extremely unenviable. Owls, however, natu- rally shun the light, but of unfeathered owls, as yet, we have met with no adequate definition. 7. Men exist, even in this city, if beings with the under- standing of men they can be, who talk about the necessity of proving every thing mathematically, before it can be admitted to be truth ! Had such mathematicians been born, as many are, in mines, where no sun is to be seen, how by mathemati- cal demonstration, could they have proved either the existence or nature of light, its divisibility into the prismatic colors^ or its properties, of reflection, refraction, or polarization ? yet they know that these are facts or existing laws and properties, without the aid either of them or their de- monstrations. Do these things either not exist, or is no man authorized to believe them without the warrant of these gen- tlemen of the itaque, ergo, and idcirco genus 1 8. Now is there no such light as moral light ; or is that which is called moral truth, some imaginary thing, without either hght or heat ? Is there no intellectual sun that can shine on minds not as wilfully blind as theirs, without the need of their demonstrations, their EucHd, their algebra ; or need we their *^ Pons asinorum,^^ their " ass^s bridge," to get over all difficulties, in order to see such light ? Is that moral truth 178 , ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. either not allowed to exist, or must he that sees its light, and feels its warmth and energy, wait until some demonstration can be hit upon to make all plain? Shall the blind teach those that have sight ; the cfea/ those ih'di can hear ; the callous stone those that can feel? Shall Euclid, Simpson, Euler, Emmerson, Bernoulli, dead men all, cooled down to we know not how many degrees below Zero, teach us that there is neither moral light or felicity ? Can it be that such small-eyed gentlemen exist that expect that the advocates of moral truth are to wait until the dead can teach the living ? If there be such a thing as truth, and living truth too, a sun that wants no candle, cannot that which is essentially truth declare more concerning itself than ever blind guides can do? 9. By the generality of writers, probable evidence is made co-extensive with moral evidence ; that is, in their view, " all moral evidence is probable evidence !"* And by way of apolo- gy they tell us, that the word probable is ambiguous, having a philosophic as well as a common acceptation ; in the former implying every thing not mathematical. But what kind of consolation is this to the reader who never heard of this dis- tinction, and by the word probable understands any thing con- tingent or not certain, especially when in addition to all this, he is told that there is no certainty^ but what will submit to the test of mathematical demonstration, that all the rest is probable? Thus then have we a probable sun, a probable moon, a probable fire, and not only so, but a probable burn- ing, 3.Yid probable scalding, probable pleasures, and proba- ble pains ; and that too, even if the pains should be of the unmathematical genus, that they SLve pains that can be felt, whether of the gout or tooth ache, yet are they probable, be- cause not mathematical. Thus the man that comes into the parlor, nearly frozen with cold, and is told, that there is a fire in the kitchen, whether he first believes this on testimony, or when he sees it on entering the kitchen, or when he is cheer- ed by its warmth, still from beginning to end it is ?l\\ probable because not mathematical. Water and the thirsty, and beef and the hungry are excellent juxta-positions, and by them, the thirsty and the hungry have the probable evidence that the necessities of nature are satisfied ; but the hungry and thirsty * To the honor of mathematics generally, and of mathematicians too, not of the class to which we allude, who with all their boasted powers, probably never read, much less understood, the Principia of the " facile Princeps" of mathe- matics, Sir Isaac Newton, these were not his views. Sir Isaac was not only mathematically, but morally great ; and his dying words evinced that the light of moral truth was shining on his soul. ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. 179 say that their evidence is better than the mathematical. It is true that what may be moral certainty and conviction to me may not be such to you, any more than what is mathema- tical certainty and conviction to you, may not be such to him who never read Euclid. But this, in either case, alters not the fact, which is, that evidence exists in both cases, whatever may be tht faculties of perceiving it in either, and they two will remain eternally distinct without the necessity of the one proving the existence of the other, any more than it is ne- cessary that the light of the sun should prove the light of the candle, or the light of the candle prove the light of the sun. But the licentious and unwarrantable latitude of this philosophic sense of the word probable is an insult to common sense ; and an indignity to the Fountain of Truth himself, and Parent of the very sun that shines in the heavens. It goes so far that it proves too much ; for the demonstration of the ma- thematician is certainty, whilst the existence of the thinking power of him that produced it, rests on probable evidence. Here probability produces certainty, the less the greater ; or in other words the less is greater than the greater ! ! which comes to one of a mathematician's " third things,^^ which he commonly calls " quod absurdum est.^^ Here then is mathematical monomania, that involves, in some Cartesian vortex of probable evidence, the word, the testimony, the evi- dence, the certainty of Him who is essential and immutable veracity, the Original and Eternal Fountain not only of the Moral Sun, but of all the suns that ever did and ever will shine ; and goes, at least next door to giving even Him the lie, merely because He is either not mathematical, or because either He himself, or his testimony is not now, nor ever will or can be comprehended within the narrow limits of three or four hundred pages of Euclid's Elements. And thus the sons of truth are to be told, whether they first merely believe this testimony, and afterwards, as in the case of the man at the fire, begin to see it, and then to feel and enjoy its renovating warmth, whether they have tested, through all the severest vicis- situdes of human life, for one or forty years, the veracity of that which has been proved changeless from the days of mar tyro- logy to the present ; yet it is all something probable because not mathematical ! I But the day is coming when that mo- ral truth will be found on a rock, that will stand firm when all else shall shake, and the Sons of Truth, in its noon-tide glory, shall wave the trophies of eternal victory in cloudless splen- dor, when all things else, including mathematical diagrams, shall be dark. It is time then that this word probable, as 180 ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. applied to moral truth, should be swept from the pages of every book that has the least regard to truth, v^^ith a broom dipt in nitric acid keen enough to sever eternally the limb of the dead from the soul of the living, 10. Moral evidence involves all that portion of human tes- timony v^'hich a large number of the most intelligent part of mankind have, in all ages, after due examination, found to produce certainty in every rational mind. But in a work first printed at Boston, in the year 1821, the following exam- ple, in order to show certain differences between mathemati- cal and moral reasoning, is given, viz: " The assertion, that Carthage was never taken by the Romans, though false, is not absurd; for there was a time when it was true." This sentence if it mean any thing to the purpose, must signify as follows. The assertion, now, in the year 1821, that Carthage was never taken by the Romans, is not absurd ; that is, it is not absurd to contradict that concurrent history and testi- 'mony which all rational and competent men have, in all ages since, admitted to be evidence, and that for this good reason, that a time was, when Carthage was not so taken, and con- sequently then, no such fact was to be contradicted ! Theem- dence that " the Romans once possessed Great Britain," is made up of the following accumulative testimonies ; imme- morial tradition ; original manuscripts ; early biographical records; the testimony of historians; the ruins of Roman buildings, camps and walls ; Roman coins, urns, vessels, and inscriptions; the several vestiges from the first, discovered almost every year, and the universal belief and assent of all men to this fact ; but for any man having the opportunity to be informed, to say that this accumulative testimony is not evidence, or evidence in any rational mind to command con- viction, would certainly be absurd. (Art. 122.) Probable testimony is that which does not amount to evidence, and is deduced from declarations or in- ferences not amounting to certainty. 1. Thus then, for the first time, the bold step is taken, to deny the existence of any such thing as probable evidence; which implies a contradiction. " Evidence," as already de- fined, and contradistinguished from testimony, (Art. 106 and 107,) "is that complete testimony or concurrence of testimo- nies, which is sufficient to produce certainty or conviction, in faculties capable and willing to perceive it." Evidence? therefore, if not certainty to those who will not perceive it, is ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE^ 181 sufficient in all minds of rational conduct, of producing cer- tainty. To those that perceive it, evidence and certainty, though not identical, are yet as near as cause and effect. To talk of probable certainty would be certainly ridiculous, and probability producing certainty is not much better. We therefore deny the existence of any such thing as probable evidence, a term that has been productive of confusion in the minds of thousands; though we fully admit the existence of probable testimony, since the whole of testimony until it amounts to evidence is probable. (Art. 106.) We cease to attach the terms of probable testimony or probable evidence either to moral evidence or moral truth. That which has been established, tested, tried in all ages, by every kind of proof, not excepting visible, audible, tangible, external, iii" ternal, individual, social, and in every other way that rationality can possibly require, we cannot, we will not, call probable evidence, oy probable testimony; but on the contra- ry, what we have known and seen, we, according to unalte- rably^ conviction, testify, that the sun needs no candle. Stars give probable testimony to the doubtful traveller, but when the sun rises, these scintillations vanish. 2. When human testimony rests on the attestation either of a single individual, or of more, not of known character or veracity ; or when the witness is not competent to know what he says, or was not at the time in circumstances requisite to enable him to know the fact to which his testimony refers ; or when, from motives or inducements favorable to his tempo- rary interest, he is suspected not to say what he knows, it is a case that falls within the limits only of probable testimony. 3. Probable testimony is also frequently derived from common experience, or such experimental facts which either have not been often repeated, or if repeated, not attended with results sufficiently uniform to establish any thing more than a presumptive conclusion. The success of a medicine, salutary in seven cases out of ten, and apparently injurious in three, is a question only of probability. " An equal num- ber of favorable and unfavorable instances leave the mind in a state of suspense, without exciting the smallest degree of as- surance on either side. When the favorable instances exceed the unfavorable in number, we begin to think the future event in some degree probable, and more or less so, according to the surplus of favorable instances. A few favorable cases, with- out any mixture of unfavorable ones, render an event proba- ble in a high degree; but the favorable experience must be 182 ON DEDUCTIVE EVIDENCE. both extensive and uniform, before it can produce moral evi- dence." 4. Analogy is also a source of probable evidence. Thus a gentleman knowing that acidity is extremely injurious in the gout, to which he is subject, and also that three grains* of magnesia will neutrahze the acidity in one wine glass of Sherry, judges, by analogy, (for the case appears similar) that the same quantity will produce the same effect in a glass of Port wine. This analogy, though it brings him near the truth, yet not exactly, since Port wine is different from Sherry^ the acidity of which, on experiment, he finds to absorb three and a half grains, instead of three. 4. The calculation of chances has also been reckoned as a source of probable testimony. The doctrine of chances is that which teaches the degree of probability or improbability of any one of a given number of events, considered as equally possible. It is a mathematical, not strictly a logical subject, for which Demoivre's doctrine of chances may be consulted. INTERROGATORY EXAMINATION o» Chap. VIII. Q. 1. What is deductive evidence 1 Art. 118. Q. 2. Wherein does deductive differ from intuitive evidence 1 Q. 3. How many kinds are there of deductive evidence ? 119. Q. 4. Give me a definition of mathematical evidence. 120, Q. 5. Describe moral evidence. 121. Q. 6. What is probable testimony 1 122. * The rule may be, for one wine glass full, or two ounces of Sherry, three grains of magnesia ; three and a half grains for Port wine ; five grains for Vi- donia ; five grains for Porter, and two and a half grains for Beer. PART III. ON ARGUMENTATION. On Induction and Analogy. CHAP. I. Section I. INDUCTION. (Art 123.) In DVCTioNf in a general sense, is that process, by which we examine the properties of individuals, or of species without or with reference to those properties being common to the whole species or genus ; and is of two kinds ; the former is discursive, the latter argumentative. (Art. 124.) Discursive induction is that process, by which we examine the properties of individuals or of species, with- out reference to those properties being common to the whole species or genus. 1. This may be, and is often done, by all persons of observation or reflection, whether accidentally, or intentionally, though not in the first case with any view to obtain the premises to consti- tute an argument. Thus a person in early Hfe may remember that he observed that an individual, suppose a, (it may be an animal, a man, a vegetable, a mineral, &c. , as the case may be,) has a property, which call x ; afterwards he may per- ceive that the individual, b, has the same property x ; and as he advances in life or in experience, or travels by land or sea, whether these observations be accidental or intentional, he notices, that other individuals, as c, d, e, and/, have each re- spectively, the property x. This begins to make some im- pression on his mind ; though at first his observation seemed casual, yet the accumulated instances lead him to presume that there exists some general law, of which at first he had fio conception. (It may be a case iiktheology, natural history, 1S4 ON INDUCTION. philosophy, trade, law, or even phrenology, &:c.) The numer- ous facts lead him now to read or converse on the subject, by which means he learns, that the individuals, a, b, c, d, e,yj all belong to one species, viz : to the species A ; but that there is another individual of that species, g, which he has not ob- served ; neither can any man or book give him information as to g : and where to find g, he knows not ; nevertheless, as he has six cases established out of the seven, he has strong pre- sumptive or probable testimony of the existence of a general law, which he can now express, by saying, '•'' JlllindividuaU of the class «/5, have the property xP Though argumenta- tion originally was not his intention, yet he is now in possession of the major premiss of an argument, which, until ^ can be examined, is at least presumptive ; but he may from a ^re- su7nptive premiss diQdi\xcQ at least, 3. presumptive conclusion of strong probability; viz. All individuals of the specie? A, have the property x. g belongs to the class A ; therefore g has the property x. 2. In the course of time, he meets with g, and finds it has the property x. Now he can express the general law, from a certain premiss, and prove that the major of the former syl- logism, at first presumptive, is a conclusion of certainty from premises experimentally tested and found also to be certain- ties ; viz. a, bf Cy d, e,f,g, are all the individuals of the class A. This he learned from books or conversation. The property x is common to a, b, c, d, e, f, g. This he learned experimentally. The property x is common to all the individuals of the class A. The fact established as a principle of science. 3. These observations at first, or as to a, b, c, &c. were merely casual, without reference to, or even the knowledge of, any general law or property, when the induction is merely discursive, or the collection of facts known and observed by experience, or even by experiment casually noticed, or inten- tionally instituted ; but still if intentionally, not with reference to any law as yet, of course, unsuspected. 4. But as the instances are increased, through the succes- sive steps, d, e,f, a presumption in proportion arises, that such a law, at first unsuspected, would be, could all the cases be examined, found to be general, as to some class as yet ua- ON INDUCTION. 185 defined, and not known to be the class A. Here the induction ceases to be purely discursive, or wandering, but is in search of some class, and the individuals composing it. An indistinct view of some object or principle of science arises, as yet like twilight, on the mind, excites inquiry, which is answered by the further information that the several individuals, «, 6, c, d^ e, f, g, compose a class or species, called A, and that g only remains to be examined. A probable conclusion as to the actual existence of a general law at first suspected, and co- extensive with the whole class A, now takes place, and induction becomes argumentative; as yet from assumed premises, until g, the only remaining individual of the class, is examined, when the induction is completed by forming a syl- logism on certain premises, which, when regular, declares a principle of science no longer a matter of doubt or contro- versy. (Art. 125.) Argumentative induction is that process, by which we examine some property of particulars until we ar- rive at their universal, on the presumption that the property observed, is common to the universal ; in order to establish the requisite premises for argumentation. 1. Thus Mr. Bakewell, the celebrated cattle breeder, (a case mentioned by Dr. Whately,) '* observed, in a great num- ber of individual beasts, a tendency to fatten readily, and in a great number of others, the absence of this constitution. In every individual of the former description, he observed a cer- tain peculiar m,ake, though they differed widely in size, color, &c. Those of the latter description differed no less in various points, but agreed in being of a different make from the others. These facts were his data ; from which combining them with the general principle, that nature is steady and uniform in her proceedings, he logically drew the conclusion that beasts of the specified make have universally a peculiar tendency to fatten : but then his principal merit consisted in making the observations, and in so combining them, as to abstract from each of a multitude of cases, differing widely in many respects, the circumstances in which they all agreed, and also in con- jecturing skilfully how far those circumstances were likely to be found in the whole class : the making of such observations, and still more the combination, abstraction, and judgment employed, are what men commonly mean when they speak of induction." q2 186 ON INDUCTION. 2. Up to this point, Dr. Whately does not consider induc- tion argHmentative, nor does he admit it to be such until all the premises are discovered, and stated in argumentative form. On this point, almost trivial, we beg leave to differ from Dr. Whately. Induction, so long as it is merely discursive, as ob- serving facts in the common way, and collecting them, but not to any specific purpose, nor to prove a property at that time not suspected to exist, is certainly not argumentative or logi- cal. But the moment induction advances beyond this, though only on the presumption of the existence of a law, which may be predicated of the whole of any class, and is directed in such a way as to obtain all the premises of an argument, it is of the argumentative character, conducted on the persuasion that such an argument may be completed. The first obser- vation of Mr. Bakewell, for example, in the first cases might be casual, wherein nothing either of the incipient or complete argument could exist. But when these cases began to multi- . ply and arrest his notice, it led to the presumption, 1st, that there was a distinct species of cattle easily fattened ; 2dly, that such and such marks distinguished that species. Consequently with these two premises, though then presumptive, Mr. Bake- well appears to have proceeded, and that with the view to establish these two facts, that the argument might be then conclusive in his own mind ; that is, he proceeded argumenta- tively, and with a view to establish an argument, from which point his induction was of the argumentative character, though no argument was yet completed, as much as an embryo is a being, before it is a being of the same kind at maturity. And Mr. Bakewell's induction from that point was the embryo of the following syllogism. There is a distinct species of cattle easily fattened. Such and such marks distinguish that species. Those having those marks are easily fattened. 3. If of a young student in c4iemistry it were inquired, " have all neutral salts qualities different from those o{ either of the simples composing them .^" he would, if deprived of all other means of knowing this to be a fact, proceed first by induction. After he obtained from the examination of a few, presumptive testimony, to establish complete evidence, he would probably proceed. First, with the nitrates ; and having obtained the several individuals of this species, as the nitrate of potassa, the nitrate of soda, the nitrate of ammonia, the nitrate of silver, &c., and finding by induction that each and every one had qualities ON INDUCTION. 187 distinct from either of the simples composing them, he could then predicate, by syllogistic reasoning, this property of this species of the genus, neutral salt. Secondly. He would then proceed to the sulphates ; as to the sulphate of potassa, of soda, lime, magnesia, iron, &c., and his induction being completed, he could then predicate by syllogism of this species of the genus neutral salt. Thirdly. To complete his induction, and to arrive ulti- mately, through the several species, to their genus, a neutral salt, as originally proposed, he must now^ proceed consecu- tively with the remaining species, viz. with the chlorates, carbonates, acetates, fluates, phosphates, prussiates, oxa- lates, chromates, borates, &c., and the results by induction being the same, he may sum up the whole, by a syllogistic conclusion, predicating that neutral salts have qualities dis- tinct from either of the simples composing them. 4. From this view of the subject it appears, First, that in- duction is the reverse of syllogism. Induction proceeds from particulars to a universal, or to a universal of any kind con- taining particulars composing and completing it ; as from in- dividuals to a variety ; from varieties, or class, to a species ; from SPECIES to a genus; from gejjera to a tribe; from tribes to an order. On the contrary, syllogism proceeds from universals of any kind to particulars, as from an order to a tribe, from a tribe to a genus ; from a genus to a species, from a species to a variety, or from a variety, or any other universal, to an individual, provided that those particulars are contained within what is predicated of their universal. Secondly. It appears that induction and syllogism together, make up a complete system of argumentation. We cannot always proceed by syllogism, that is, when the universal is not known, nor what may be predicated of it, but the know- ledge of this may be obtained by induction, by examining its particulars. But when this is known, induction is unnecessa- ry, we proceed by syllogism; or syllogism sums up, concisely and argumentatively expresses in three lines, a volume of the labors of induction. Induction is, therefore, the pioneer for syllogism. Syllogism relieves induction of its toil. Thirdly. The rank of priority is doubtless due to induc- tion ; that of completion and certainty to syllogism. In early ages, before universal natures were known, men would arrive at them by the patient investigation of particulars by induc- tion. The process would begin with presumption, or with a presumptive conclusion as to a supposed or real universal 188 ON INDUCTIOJT. founded on partial testimony, and probably at a lower grade still, with discursive until it advanced to argumentative in- duction. The latter would proceed through various degrees of probable testimony, gradually approximating to complete evidence ; and throughout the whole of this some degree of uncertainty would attach to the process. But the moment it attains the point of certainty, induction has discharged its honorable office. Syllogism itself is indebted to it for the in- formation it has afforded, and even for its own material. The universal is now known, and what may be predicated of it, and every premiss necessary to the construction of an ar- gument, is no longer presumptive. Syllogism memorializes the whole, and in a synoptic form, in the miniature compass of three lines, and by a conclusion deduced from premises no longer presumptive, forces conviction on one not capable of tracing such connexion through the several steps of a long induction. Fourthly. Thus it may be perceived, that throughout the whole of the period of the allowable existence of induction, it is a presumptive conclusion from probable testimony as to the universal. But syllogism need not be employed except to deduce a conclusion from premises of certainty. That is, induction is an argumentative process within the limits of probable testimony; syllogism is an argument expressive of certainty from complete evidence. On this account, partly, Dr. Whately denies that induction is an argument until it can be expressed syllogistically, or when the universal and its predicate are known ; but at this point precisely it is unneces- sary as an argument, would be inconvenient, and properly ceases to be one. We do not contend that induction is an argument, but a process conducted on an assumption that ar- gumentative principles exist, and therefore is within the pre- cincts of what is argumentati\^e, as much as twilight is within the precincts of the morning. Fifthly. Truths, by Dr. Whately, very properly have been divided into truths of information, and truths of instruc- tion. It is the office of induction to affi)rd the former, that of syllogism to communicate the latter. Induction seeks a science, syllogism expresses it. Information supplies the ma- terial of instruction, instruction cannot exist without informa- tion. Induction and information, and syllogism and instruction are therefore correlatives. In short, induction and syllogism are the two luminaries during the night and the day of science. 5. Induction is the organon of Bacon, which he recommend- ON INDUCTION. 189 ed as the means of acquiring truths of information, though many have erroneously imagined that he proposed to substi- tute it in place of the dictum, of Aristotle, on which syllogism is founded. This is another testimony of the possibility of even successive generations, when misled by misrepresentation, ex- isting even for centuries under a popular error. The functions of induction and syllogism are quite distinct, and it is impossi- ble, with propriety, to substitute the one for the other. We agree with Dr. Whately that syllogism includes, or is, all rea- soning, and consequently in this sense includes induction. It does so in the view we have taken ; induction is the incipient syllogism, syllogism expresses the complete induction. Induc- tion begins with assumed premises syllogistically conducted till probable testimony amounts to evidence, and induction at maturity arrives at syllogism. 6. From the following example will be perceived what pre- miss is commonly suppressed in the inductive process, and like- wise the comparative length, when the cases are only seven be- tween it and the syllogistic expression. Cloven feet belong to the ox, a horned animal, Cloven feet belong to the sheep, a horned animal. Cloven feet belong to the deer, a horned animal. Cloven feet belong to the goat, a horned animal, Cloven feet belong to the antelope, a horned animal, Cloven feet belong to the elk, a horned animal, Cloven feet belong to the ibex, a horned animal. If this completes the inductive process we arrive at the major premiss, until this suppressed and doubtful, viz : " A property which belongs to the ox, sheep, deer, goat, an- telope, elk, ibex, &c. belongs to all horned animals." Having obtained this major, the syllogism may be completed, thus — A property belonging to the ox, sheep, deer, goat, antelope, elk, ibex, &c. be- longs to all horned animals. Cloven feet is a property belonging to these ; therefore Cloven feet is a property belonging to all horned animals. 7. Induction, is derived from the Latin word, induco, to bring in, and therefore induction properly signifies a bringing in, one by one, all the particulars pf the universal, as in this case, the ox, the sheep, the deer, &c. in order to ascertain, if what is predicated of one, may of the whole species or genus. 190 on analogy. Section 2. ON ANALOGY. (Art. 126.) Analogy is a presumptive inference from the re- semblance of a particular or universal of one kind more known, to the particular or universal of another less known, that a pro- perty existing in the former exists in the latter. 1. Analogy is seldom employed except in the absence of more certain premises for reasoning. It proceeds on the pre- sumption that in consequence of a similarity, in the mode, con- stitution or circumstances of an individual, or individuals, of one class, with which we are more acquainted, to those of ano- ther class, with which we are less acquainted, that some pro- perty known to belong to the former, may also belong to the individuals or class less known. It is, therefore, a process of deriving a presumptive conclusion from presumptive premises in the absence of anything more certain. Analogy, however, may by various degrees approximate towards a conclusion of strong probability. This may be illustrated in the following manner. 2. A has a property, which call x ; but this property may depend on its constitution or circumstances which consist of the parts, «, 5, c, without the addition of any other. B's consti- tution consists of the parts a and 6, wanting c, without that defect, however, being known ; C's constitution is composed of h, c, wanting «, but , with the addition of e ; D's constitution is «, b, c, d ; and £'s is precisely A's, viz : «, 6, c, without that identity being known, and they stand thus : d, And the argument from presumed or partially known prC' mises, will stand thus : All beings of A's constitution, have A's property, which is x, B, C, D, E are of A's constitution : therefore B, C, D, E have the property of A, which is x. /A is «, b, c. 1 B is a, b. <; Cis b, c, D is a, h c, E is a, h, c. ON ANALOGY. 191 The major is not denied, the minor is, it is presumed, not known, and when examined turns out to be true only as to a part of it, i. e. as to E whose case is that of A ; and the above on presumed premises may be reduced to the following, where nothing is denied and the conclusion certain : All beings of A's constitution have the property x, E has A's constitution ; therefore E has the property x. The property x, however, may be more or less found in B, C, and D, though not in the same degree, or with the same modifications as in A or E, according to something either de- fective or redundant in their natures not applying to the case of A. 2. But how does this apply in medicine. The physician applies a remedy to A and to E, and in both cases succeeds ; and likewise to B, C and D, who apparently/ are persons of the same structure and organization ; yet there is either some- thing defective in the one or redundant in the other, of which the physician, not being omniscient, knew not; his best efforts, therefore, reasoning by analogy from the case of A and E, are more or less opposed, according as the difference, whatever it be, more or less agrees with the medicine exhibited. 3. What we now call comparative anatomy, seems to have been the first process, at least amongst certain nations, by which we have arrived at our present knowledge of the structure of man. It was the process of analogy, and conclusions more or less perfect were obtained from it, which ultimately led to those of greater precision and certainty. To analogy, though we trust to it as little as possible, we owe many obligations, without being thankful for past favors. We would hope that there is always something in man averse to cutting up other men even when dead, and much more to injuring the living subject to explore the mysteries of the vital machine. Com- parative anatomy, therefore, was a more agreeable process at least to delicate feelings. Here is an animal, an organized being once capable of life and motion, which by dissection we find to have these parts, thus and thus situated. Man is such a being ; therefore man has these parts thus situated. Thus was their analogy producing a conclusion, partly right, and partly wrong. The middle term, animal, is improper in the sense to which it is applied. The animal dissected was pro- bably a quadruped, a bird or a fish ; but man is neither ; and therefore, since the minor is not contained in the middle, no conclusion of certainty follows. 192 ON ANALOGY. 4. But ABC and D have all tried the business x, and have succeeded. I intend to try the business x ; therefore I shall succeed. I try, and fail ! why ? was the fau!t in the syllogism ? Cer- tainly ; for first the little important I is neither A nor B nor C nor D, and therefore no part of the middle term ; for one had more capital, another more skill, and I perhaps less man- agement; and I find that I derived my conclusion from an analogy of a very remote character, since I was not even any part of the middle term. 5. But the law says All that commit the crime x, with the aggravations a, b, c, shall die. Z has committed the crime x, with the aggravations a and b ; therefore Z, shall die. Not so ; for Z is not in the middle term. It is true that there is a similarity in the crime defined, and that Z commit- ted ; but the want of the circumstance, c, in the latter, will save his life. The want of c throws him out of the middle term, that thunders, "thou shalt die." 6. But the law also declares that the punishment for the crime Y is imprisonment for life ; and Z is charged before the court for the commission of Y. But the definition of Y in the , statutes is ambiguous, or such as to admit of more meanings than one ; and the questions become, 1, what is Y? 2, did Z commit Y? No similar case having been decided in this country, the only mode practicable is analogy, or reasoning from the defi- nition of Y in another country, w^hose circumstances are simi- lar to ours ; or if that definition, as in our case, be defective in the statute book, the reasoning must be from the way in which it is understood in the courts of that country. Thus in the case of L, the court in that country decided that the three circumstances, a, b, c, were necessary to Y as contemplated by the law. fn the case of B, the essentials were decided to be a b. So also in the case of F. Two cases, therefore, against one, contend that the two circumstances only, a, b, constitute the crime Y ; Z did these, and therefore committed Y, whose definition is determined by analogy to be a, b. 7. Reasoning from analogy is not always considered as ar- gument, but implies motive and illustration involving argu- ment from premises whose force is often sooner felt than un- derstood. It may be termed reasoning, not argumentation. Analogy on many occasions is improper, but many are the ON ANALOGY. 193 cases wherein it is proper and useful. It is inference from resemblance. If that resemblance be slight or remote, or the circumstances in whatever is essential to the inference not parallel, analogy is improper ; as, for example, the mind in suspense has been compared to a balance in a state of equi- Hbrium. The analogy here is improper, for what determines the balance is mechanical ; but what determines the mind is intellectual. 8. Analogy is frequently employed for a didactive purpose, especially as to children and minds not familiar with abstract truth. It employs visible symbols, allegories, metaphors, allu- sions easily understood, to teach and illustrate what is less known from some resemblance between them. It contains an implied argument whose force is readily perceived. The great- est Teacher employed this method. '^ Behold the fowls of the air, for they sow not, neither do they reap, nor gather into barns ; yet your heavenly Father feedeth them. Are ye not much better than they ? Consider the lillies of the field," &c. Here is an argument from analogy. Will a farmer take care of that part of his stock which is of Httle value, and will he not take care of that which is of greater ? If men, if common sense act thus, will not Providence 1 The minds of most to whom his discourses were addressed, were in a state not other- wise equally capable of understanding and appreciating the truth and spirituality of his doctrines. He chose this method, and this evinced his intimate acquaintance with human na- ture. " If I have told you earthly things and ye believe not, how shall ye believe if I tell you of heavenly things ?" Ana- logy begins, therefore, with earthly things, the A, B, C of Christianity, and then ascends to the mysteries into which " angels desire to look ;" " what eye hath not seen, what ear hath not heard, and what hath not entered into the heart of man to conceive" — " the heavenly things" — prepared for those that " love Him." 9. Analogy is also employed after argumentation, not be- cause the latter is insufficient, but because there are some that are disposed to understand and believe the former, when they are not the latter. Hence Butler wrote his Analogy of Natural and Revealed Religion, not because the direct evi- dence of Revealed Religion was not more than sufficient to produce conviction in all rational minds willing to read, in- vestigate and understand, but because many are disposed to begin first, if ever they begin at all, with the volumes of Natural Religion, And the things analogous in Nature and 194 ON ANALOGr. experience lead us to the same conclusions more immediately and directly declared by revelation. 10. By analogy, the naturalist or philosopher is enabled to continue his travels to the utmost bounds of reasonable infer- ence, or of what an elegant writer terms verisimilitude, but where sense cannot follow; whilst in the animal kingdom, Cambray, Nieuwentyt, Derham, Bonnet, Buffon, and Swammerdam ; in the vegetable, Tournefort and Linne; in the mineral, Theophrastus, Werner^ Klaproth, Cron- stedt, Morveau, Reaumur, Kirwan, St a hi, Lavoisier, Four- croy and Davy ; and in the motions of the heavenly bodies, Copernicus, Kepler, Newton, Halley and Herschell, have observed that nature acts with uniform and consistent laws, and that those laws always point to nature's God; he, in com- mon with them, by analogy from the things that are seen, infers that in the fields of ether yet unmeasured by Herschell's telescope, this law, this uniformity, this testimony and evi- dence prevail. 11. No great mind exists without occasional excursions to regions so sublime. We are yet within the precincts of analo- gy, or of reasonable inference from known and visible resemblance, and are unwilling therefore to yield the whole of this to the creative fancy of the poet, but within the limits of inference almost irresistible, with Dr. Reid exclaim, " We observe a great similitude between this earth which we inhabit, and the other planets of this system. They all revolve round the sun, as the earth does, though at different distances, and in different periods. They borrow all their light from the sun, as we do. Several of them are known to revolve round their axis, like the earth, and by that means must have a like succession of day and night. Some of them have moons, that serve to give them light in the absence of the sun, as the moon does to us. From all this similitude, it is not unreasonable to think, that those planets may, like our earth, be the habitation of various orders of living creatures." 12. We need not, however, stop here. This is but one solar system, and however great to us, who are finite, to the universe, which is infinite, nay to that galaxy of which we are a part, it is but a point. We cease, therefore, to con- template single systems, and with Herschell, view galaxies, aggregates of systems, probably each like our '^via lactea," or milky way, a grand celestial chain of systems that no finite mind can grasp, but whose myriad suns have, doubtlesss, each like ours, their own systems, with planets revolving around ON ANALOGY. 195 them. Herschell considers our galaxy but one of the many, the countless aggregates of systems that compose the universe. He directs our attention to one, to another, and to many dis- tant beds of light ; and by his telescope, they appear each a congregation of suns. We are yet within the limits of mortal vision, and by analogy infer, if this be the case so far as our own view can reach, why not throughout the universe. A universe composed of aggregates, an aggregate composed of systems, a system composed of planets, a planet peopled by intelligence. No one attempts to prove it by direct argu- ment; it is infered by analogy, from known resemblance, confirmed, so far as it can go, by observation, and compatible with the views we would form of infinity. A finite agent produces a finite work, but an infinite agent an infinite work; above, below, on this side, on that, one vast unbounded uni- verse of being and created intelligence, of which no finite mind can form an idea, but is comprehended by Him who comprehends all, Himself comprehended by none. He has a name that no man can spell, and whilst He is the creator of suns, is, himself, the sun of suns, the fountain of every thing excellent, and therefore so comprises within himself, all ex- cellencies, and every thing amiable, that not any word, nor all the words, in any, nor in all languages, can express. And is not He, therefore, who comprises all excellencies, and every thing amiable within himself, and consequently every thing excellent or that can be loved at all, the proper object of reverence, adoration and love, to you, to me, to all ? Life is too short to do any thing else than to love Him who com- prises all excellencies in One, and without whom nothing is excellent. " To whom," therefore, " shall we go. Thou alone hast the words," (the excellencies) " of eternal life." INTERROGATORY EXAMINATION, ON Chap. I. Q. 1. What is your definition of induction? Art. 123. Q. 2. How many kinds of induction are there *? 123. Q. 3. What is discursive induction 1 124. 196 ON ANALOGY. Q. 4. What is argumentative induction'.' 125. Q. 5. How does induction differ from syllogism 1 125, note 4. Q. 6. When you are in search of some new truth, or truths of infobma- Tioir, in the investigation do you employ induction or syllogism "i 125, notes. Q. 7. To what truths of information, or truths of instruction, is the syllogism adapted] notes. Q. 8. When from premises, the truth of which is known, you deduce a truth of instruction, contained in them, though not perceived, but yet infer^d from them, dp you employ induction or syllogism 1 125, notes. Q. 9. What is analogy 1 126. Q. 10. In what cases is analogy employed 1 126, note. SECTION in. ON ARGUMENTS. CHAP. I. On the Nature, Parts and Rules of Syllogism. (Art. 127.) A PREMISS is a proposition employed in argu- ment or syllogism : every syllogism contains two, of which the first* is the major premiss, the second the minor premiss ; these two are the premises by which the last proposition of the syllogism, or conclusion, is proved ; as JMajor premiss. An effect without a cause is an absurdity. Minor premiss . Chance, in the sense of the atheist, is an effect without a cause. Conclusion. Chance, in the sense of the atheist, is an absurdity, (Art. 128.) An argument is that expression by which from premises granted or proved to be true, a conclusion results as their necessary consequence. 1. In this sense an argument is an expression of that por- tion or quantity of reasoning generally as may be comprised and expressed within three propositions ; and it is that expres- sion to which every thing that is reasoning may be reduced. Every thing that is not reasoning, however it may appear as such, when reduced to this, is reduced only to be exposed. If there be any thing more of reasoning than can be thus ex- pressed in three propositions, it implies more acts of reasoning than one. An argument expresses one act of reasoning and no more. In common language it is sometimes taken for ar- gumentative discourse which may occupy a whole volume ; as when we speak of " Warburton's Argument to prove the di- vine legation of Moses." 2. '' Reason" is that faculty by which the reasoning process is conducted. Reasoning is the act of reason. In common * i. e. when the syllogism is regularly stated. r2 198 ON THE NATURE, &C. OF SYLLOGISM. language, the word " reason" is sometimes used to signify reasoning. (Whately's Logic, p. 279.) Reasoning is some- times employed to mean, not only its own direct act or opera- tion, but also all those mental processes necessary to that act ; thus the mathematician not only has to demonstrate, but to exercise his skill in the judicious selection of the proper materials for his argument ; in like manner, the naturalist or philosopher, before he establishes the principle or science it is his object to prove, has frequently to employ, as in induc- tion, assumed premises, select and combine facts, and by abstraction separate or take off that unsuitable to his pur- pose, that he may contemplate that, and that only, which is suitable to his selection, and the mode of proof he intends to pursue. The whole of this, and whatever other mental pro- cess is necessary, as well as the direct act, is frequently in- cluded in the general and somewhat vague word reasoning. In contradistinction to this, argumentation is employed in this work to signify the direct act of reasoning only. (See Art. 4.) (Art. 129.) In every complete argument, Mere «7'e three and only three terms : two in the conclusion called the ex- tremes ; and these can neither be proved to agree nor differ, without one and only one third term. 1. For the meaning of a term, see Art. 8. Third term or middle term. All enslaved by appetite are not freemen. The sensualist is enslaved by appetite. 1 2 The sensualist is not a freeman. (Art. 130.) The minor term is the subject, and the major TERM the predicate of the conclusion ; and the middle term is that with which each of them is separately compared. 1 Middle term. A religion attested by miracles is from God. * The Christian religion is attested by miracles. Minor term. Major term. The Christian religion is from God. ' 2. The predicate of a conclusion is called the m,ajor term, because it is commonly m,ore comprehensive than the middle term : it is so in the above example, for not only a religion at- ON THE NATURE, &C. OF SYLLOGISM. 199 tested by miracles, but also animate and inanimate creatures are from God. 3. The minor term is so called because it is commonly less comprehensive than ihe'middle term: it is so in the above case ; for not only the Christian religion, but that typifying its future existence under the Mosaic economy, was attested by miracles: therefore the middle term, (*'a religion attested by miracles") is more comprehensive than the minor, (Art. 131.) The middle term must be such a universal term as to include the whole of the minor term. 1. In every syllogism regularly constructed, the middle term should be found in the major premiss. Syllogisms having the middle term distributed in the minor premiss should be reduced to regular form. 2. Consequently since the middle term should be a univer- sal term, and in the major proposition, the major proposition should be universal : at least all syllogisms may and should be reduced to this form. Every middle term must represent some entire order, tribe, genus, species or class of persons or things, or else some attribute that may be predicated of the whole of such universal ; and this entire class or universal must include the whole of the minor term. It is the only business of the minor proposition to assert this : if the minor proposition does not assert this, or it cannot be proved, the minor proposition is useless. (Art. 132.) The minor term must be included in the middle term, not excluded from it. All that understand Euclid are mathematicians. A Creole understands not Euclid ; therefore A Creole is not a mathematician. This is very plausible ; and nothing is denied relative to the truth of each proposition, for propositions they only are, and no argument at all ; since the minor term {a Creole^) is not included in the middle term, [all that understand Euclid^) but excluded from it, viz : " a Creole understands not Euclid." The most essential connection is, therefore, broken, and the apparent argument falls to the ground as useless. But bring the minor term, (a Creole) to his own class, or middle term, (all that understand not Euclid,) and the three disconnected propositions become an argument. 200 OPT THE NATURE, &C. OP SYLLOGISM. All that understand not Euclid, are not mathematicians, A Creole understands not Euclid ; therefore A Creole is not a mathematician. (Art. 133.) An argument contains only three proposi- tions ; TWO premises in which the middle term is compared withthe extremes; and the conclusion, in which the extremes stand together. (Art. 134.) The major premiss compares the middle term with the major ; the minor premiss the middle term with the minor ; and the conclusion, the minor with the major. 1. As, JWd. term. Major term. i ^— ^ r ^ N Major premiss. Every effect is the result of an adeq;uate cause. Min. term. Mid. term. Minor premiss. The world is an effect ; therefore Min. term. Major term. Conclusion. The world is the result of an adequate cause. (Art. 135.) Whatever is predicated of a distributed mid- dle, may be predicated in hke manner of every thing contain- ed in it. 1. By *^ predicated" here we are to understand " affirmed or denied," of the middle term, distributed. The distribution of the middle term is a subject we have already explained : first in the Analytical Introduction, (see page 36 to 42) and also in the Synthetic G^mpendium, (See Chap. IV. of proposi- tions, page 96 ;) but the whole doctrine of distribution is ex- pressed in the rule already mentioned, viz : A distributes the subject, O the predicate, I neither, and E both. 2, This rule necessarily implies the following consequence, (Art. 136.) Whatever is denied of a whole class excludes from that class every thing denied. (Art. 137.) A perfect syllogism is an argument so expressed that the major term of the conclusion must be predicated of its minor, in consequence of that minor being contained in a distributed middle of which the same major is predicated. ON THE NATURE, &C. OF SYLLOGISM. 201 J\Iid. term. 1. Every wicked man is miserable. Every tyrant is a wicked man; therefore Min. term. Maj. term. Conclusion. Every tyrant is miserable. To the above example, how does the above definition ap- ply? The major term of the conclusion, (miserable) must be predicated of its minor, (every tyrant) in consequence of that minor term, (every tyrant) being contained, as the minor pro- position asserts, in the middle term, (every vs^icked man,) distributed, (for A distributes the subject as marked,) of which the same major, (miserable) is predicated. This is the spirit of the syllogism, and nothing can be more simple than the principle it implies. 2. But of the following proposition, which is the predicate, No wicked man is a happy man, the term "wicked man" is the subject; the copula is al- ways, " is" or "is not" or their equivalents, and the proposi- tion is reducible to " A wicked man is not a happy man." The whole predicate therefore, ''happy man," is predicat- ed, i. e. here denied (by no or not) of the subject " wicked man." No discontented man is a happy man. Every wicked man is discontented ; therefore No wicked man is a happy man. The definition equally applies, therefore, in the case of ne- gative propositions ; for here, the major term, of the conclu- sion, " happy man," must be predicated, i. e. here denied, of its minor, "wicked man," in consequence of that minor, " wicked man," being contained in, as the minor premiss affirms, the middle term, " discontented man," distributed ; for " E dis- tributes both ;" of which the same major " happy man," is predicated, i. e. here denied. 3. The definition strictly applies to all syllogisms of a per- fect character ; all of the first figure, which is agreeable to Aris- totle's general law, (Art. 135.) It applies also to the third figure. But since all syllogisms are reducible to the four moods of the first figure, which are called perfect moods, this is offered as a definition of a perfect syllogism only, the rest fall under the general definition of an argument, synonymous with a syllogism generally ; (Art. 133.) 202 ON THE NATURE, &C. OF SYLLOGISM. (Art. 138.) If two terms agree with one and the same middle term, they agree with each other. (Ar(. 139.) If one term agrees, and another disagrees with one and the same middle term, these two disagree with each other. 1 . On the former of these Canons rests the validity of af- firmative conclusions ; on the latter, of negative, for no abso- lute syllogism can be faulty which does not violate these canons, none correct which does. Hence, on these two are built the rules or cautions which are to be observed with respect to syllogisms. 2. We therefore make use of some third term, in order to find whether the subject and predicate of a question agree. " It appears that every act of reasoning necessarily includes three distinct judgments ; two, wherein the ideas, whose rela- tion we want to discover, are severally compared with the middle idea; and a third, wherein they are themselves con- nected or disjoined, according to the result of that comparison. Now, as our judgments, when put into words, are called propo- 'sitions, so our acts of reasoning, when expressed by words, are termed syllogisms. And hence it follows that as every act of reasoning implies three several judgments, so every syllogism must include three distinct propositions, and when an act of reasoning is thus put into words, and appears in the form of a syllogism, the intermediate idea made use of to discover the agreement or disagreement which we seek to investigate, is called the middle term, and the two ideas themselves, with which this third is compared, are called the extremes." 3. " To illustrate this by an example, suppose that we have set ourselves to inquire, ' whether men are accountable for their actions,'' As the relation between the ideas of man and account ableness comes not within the immediate view of the mind, our first care must be to find out some third idea that will enable us to discover and trace it. A very small measure of reflection is sufficient to inform us that no creature can be accountable for his actions, unless we suppose him capable of distinguishing right from wrong, i. e. unless we suppose him possessed of reason. Nor is this alone sufficient ; for what would this capability of distinction avail him, if he had no freedom of choice, and could neither avoid the one nor pursue the other ? Hence it becomes necessary to take both these considerations in the present case. It is at the ON THE NATURE, &C. OF A SYLLOGISM. 203 same time equally evident, that wherever there is this ability of discrimination and of choice, there also a creature is ac- countable. We have then got a third idea or middle term, with which accountableness is inseparably connected, viz. the ideaof « creature possessed of reason and liberty, ^^ 4. "Let us now take this third or middle idea, and compare it with the other term in question, namely man, and we all know by experience that it may be affirmed of him, viz. that he is a creature possessed of reason and liberty. Having thus, by means of the intermediate idea, formed two several judgments — that man is possessed of reason and liberty, and that reason and liberty imply accountableness, a third obvi- ously and necessarily follows, that man is accountable for his actions. If now we put this reasoning into due form, it ex- hibits what logicians call a syllogism ; thus Every creature possessed of reason and liberty, is accountable for his actions. Man is a creature possessed of reason and liberty ; therefore Man is accountable for his actions. " — Duncan. THE RULES FOR SYLLOGISMS. (Art. 140.) Rule I. Particular propositions are contained in universals, and may be infered from them ; but universale are not contained in particulars, nor can be inferred from them. 1. Consequently the middle term should be one of the terms of a universal proposition, and the minor should be contained in it. Mr. Hedge observes, " the major proposition must always be universal, but may be either affirmative or negative and the minor proposition must always be affirmative, but may be either universal or particular. The conclusion may be either a universal affirmative, or universal negative, a particu- lar affirmative, or a particular negative. In every regular syllogism the major proposition is placed first, the minor next, and the conclusion last." Again, the middle term is so called "because its extension is less than that of the major, and greater than that of the minor term. This circumstance proves the natural situation of the middle term to be that of subject in the major premiss, and of predicate in the minor; since the predicate of a proposition is never less, but usually more general than the subject." 2. The predicate of a universal proposition is taken in no 204 ON THE NATURE, &C. OP SYLLOGISM. greater extension than its subject, and the predicate of a ne- gative is always taken universally, for in its ivhole exten^ sion it is denied of the subject ; for if we say no stone is a vegetable, we deny all sort of vegetation concerning stones. The example given on page 99 note 14, illustrates the former case, and the proposition, " no bird is a quadruped," the latter ; for the term quadruped throughout its whole extension, whe- ther elephant, camel, horse, or any thing else having four feet, essential to the character of quadruped, is denied of the sub- ject bird. 3. Mr. Hedge's remarks quoted in note 1, apply to all syllo- gisms regularly constructed. We shall meet, however, with others differently formed ; they are, however, irregular, and should be reduced to the formula of a perfect syllogjism, as de- fined in Art. 136. (Art. 141.) Rule II. An equivocal middle term proves nothing. For this is not one and the same third. 1. An equivocal term is such as, a foot, which may signify either the foot of an animal, or a measure ; so the word light either signifies that which emanates from a luminous body, as the light of the sun ; or (light the adjective) not heavy ; the effect of such an equivocal term, may be thus exemplified, " Light is contrary to darkness. Feathers are light ; therefore Feathers are contrary to daikness." The term light is ambiguous or equivocal, and is either a noun or an adjective. It is employed, in the above example, as a noun in the major proposition, as an adjective in the mi- nor, i. e. two middle terms, or not one and the same third, contrary to Art. 137 ; and the syllogism has four terms, con- trary to Art. 129. (Art. 142.) Rule III. An undistributed middle is equivo- cal ; therefore the middle term must be distributed in one of the premises. 1. If the middle term be taken for two different parts or kinds of the same common term, which would be equal to two middle terms, then the extremes in the conclusion, (i. e. the minor and major terms) not having been compared to the same THIRD, could not, in the conclusion, be compared to each other. Therefore, the middle term must not be taken twice par- ticularly, but once at least universally. If not there will ON THE NATURE, (fcc. OF SYLLOGISM. 205 be two extremes and two middle terms, four in all, contrary to the canon. Should we say, " some men are pious," and *' some men are robbers," we can never from this infer that " some robbers are pious." The premises of this example are particular affirmatives, or I, and " 1 distributes nothing ;" the middle term, therefore, "some men," is not distributed in either of the premises ; but on the contrary is taken twice particularly ; so that the term '* some men" does not mean the same men in the one as it does in the other premiss : hence here are two middle terms, not one and the same third. Aristotle's general law has nothing to do with any thing of this kind. 2. Syllogistic reasoning, as Dr. Whately very properly observes, " is all reasoning ;" that is, every thing appearing to be reasoning, not reducible to the form of the syllogism, nor standing the test of its rules, is not reasoning. To under- stand those rules, therefore, especially those relative to the distribution of the middle term, is important. Tf the middle term be undistributed, such conclusions as the following may be the consequence. A. White is a color. A. Black is a color ; therefore A. Black is white. Gross as this untruth is, yet many exist whose chief busi- ness it is to persuade both themselves and others that black is white, and white is black, founded on premises no better than these. Here color is the middle term, and being the predi- cate of a universal, (all white) is undistributed ; for A distri- butes the subject, of course not the predicate. Color being undistributed, is taken twice particularly, no where univer- sally, meaning a part of one property in one premiss, another part in the next, consequently two middle terms ; thus an un- distributed middle, a common case in specious reasoning, may prove that " black is white." I, Some animals are beasts. I. Some animals are birds ; therefore I. Some birds are beasts. This false conclusion is also the result of an undistributed middle. The middle term here is " animals.*' All the propo- sitions are I ; and " I distributes neither," subject nor predi- cate ; one part is taken in the major premiss, and another in the minor ; with the same consequence, two middle terms : of 206 ON THE NATURE, &C. OF SYLLOGISM. course nothing is proved, except the necessity of distributing the middle, which if not done, an error, frequently undis- covered, may run through a volume. 3. The rule says, " the middle term must be distributed in one of the premises;'' i. e. by being the subject of a univer- sal, or the predicate of a negative. This is always determined by considering whether the premiss is A, O, I or E, since ac- cording to the rule which must be kept in mind, <' •/! distri- butes the subject, O the predicate, I neither, and E both.''^ If the middle term be distributed in one of the premises it is enough, since if one extreme has been compared to a part of the middle term, and another to the whole of it, they must have been both compared to the same third. 4. It is therefore not sufficient for a middle term to occur in a universal proposition; for if that proposition be an affirma- tive, (" A distributes the subject,") and the middle term the predicate of it, it will not be distributed : (see the first ex- ample quoted in note 2.) If, however, one of the premises be negative, E or O, the middle term may be made the predicate of that, and will be according to the above rule distributed ; as, E. No ruminant animals are predacious. A. The lion is predacious ; therefore A. The lion is not ruminant. (Art. 142.) Rule IV. No term must be distributed in the con- clusion which was not distributed in one of the premises. 1. The contrary to this rule, or employing the whole of a term in the conclusion, of which only a part had been em- ployed in the premises, is equivalent to the introduction of four terms, though with only one middle term, and this is called an illicit process either of the major or minor term ; as A. All quadrupeds are animals. E. No bird is a quadruped ; therefore E. No bird is an animal. Illicit process of the major. 2. We here find in the conclusion, 1st. the minor term " bird," distributed, as well as the major term '^ animal," for «' E distributes both." But *' bird" is distributed in the minor premiss, which is E, by the same rule. 2d. The major term animal distributed, in the conclusion which is not distributed ON THE NATURE, &C. OF SYLLOGISM. 207 in any premiss; certainly not in the major premiss, where it is the predicate, for A distributes only the subject. It is therefore the illicit process of the major, distributed in the conclusion, and not distributed in any preceding premiss. There is however another irregularity in the above example, since the minor term, *'bird,'^ is not included in, but exclud- ed from the middle term '^quadruped," (art. 132.) rendering the whole not a perfect syllogism (art. 136.) (Art. 143.) Rule V. Two negative or two particular pre- mises, prove nothing. 1. " For in them the middle is pronounced to disagree with both extremes ; not to agree with both ; or to agree with one, and disagree with the other ; therefore, they cannot be com- pared; as, A fish is not a quadruped. A bird is not a quadruped ; proves Nothing." Therefore, in this case a third is brought, from which both terms differ. ^ 2. So also in the case of two particular premises, where either the middle term will be distributed, or there will be an illicit process ; as I. 8ome animals are sagacious. O. Some beasts are not sagacious. O. Some beasts are not animals. The middle term, *^ sagacious," is undistributed, " I distrib- utes neither," and the minor term " beast" is excluded from, not included in the middle term ; and the major term " ani- mals" is distributed in the conclusion, since ** O distributes the predicate," which was not distributed in the premises; it is likewise, therefore, an illicit process of the major term. (Art. 144.) Rule VI. If either premiss be particular or negative ; so is also the conclusion. 1. That is, if either premiss be particular, the conclusion is particular ; if either premiss be negative, the conclusion ii negative. "If the premiss be negative, the middle term is pronounced to disagree with one of the extremes, and in the other premiss, which is affirmative, to agree with the other extreme, therefore the extremes disagreeing with each other, the conclusion is negative. Consequently to prove a negative conclusion, one of the premises must be a negative." 208 ON THE NATURE, &,C. OF SYLLOGISM. 2. And if either premiss be particular, so must the conclu- sion; as, All the students that have passed the examination, will receive a diploma. Some students have passed the examination. From this it can only be infered, that some students, (not all,) will receive a diploma. For to infer in such case a uni- versal conclusion, would be an illicit process of the minor. 3. Neither is it in every case possible to infer a universal conclusion from even universal premises ; as, All gold is precious. All gold is a mineral ; therefore Some mineral is precious. 3. But even when we can infer a universal, we are at liberty to infer a particular; since what is predicated of all, may always be predicated of some of the same class. 4. According to the preceding definitions and rules, let the following syllogisms be examined : A. Whatever is an enemy to truth is an enemy to man. A. Scepticism is an enemy to truth ; therefore A. Scepticism is an enemy to man. First, By the definition. Art. 136, the a^ove is a perfect syllogism, for the major term, (an enemy to man,) must be predicated of the minor term, (scepticism,) consequent on the minor term being contained in the middle term, (whatever is an enemy to truth,) of which the same major term (an enemy to man) is predicated. Secondly. The middle term, (whatever is an enemy to man,) is distributed according to Rule III., since it is the sub- ject of the proposition A, and "A distributes the subject." Thirdly. The only term distributed in the conclusion, is the subject, "scepticism," of the proposition A, which is dis- tributed, according to the Rule, "A distributes the subject;" and this term is distributed in the minor premiss, according to • the same Rule ; it is therefore distributed in one of^the premi- ses, according to Rule IV. Fourthly. It contains not either two negative nor two par- ticular premises, according to Rule V. and its conclusion is universal and afiirmative, for neither of its premises is par- ticular or negative, according to Rule VI. 5. This may serve as an example of logical analysis, to show that it would be considerably more easy to introduce and practice logical parsing in schools, than the parsing of ON THE NATURE, &C. OP SYLLOGISM. 209 Greek, Latin, or English, according to the grammars of those languages, since all the necessary rules are few, easily learned and retained in memory; whereas, grammar rules relative to etymology, syntax and prosody, are numerous, and^ as gram- mars are commonly written, prolix and verbose, and are not, without much practice, easily retained. 6. The learner may exercise his knowledge of the rules by the analysis with the following example : A. All who wish to propagate error, dislike logic A. « Children of the mist " wish to propagate error ; therefore A. " Children of the mist " dislike logic. INTERROGATORY EXAMINATION ON CHAP. I. Q. 1. What is a premiss 1 Art. 127. Q. 2. What is the first premiss contained in an argument called? 127. Q. 3. What is the second premiss called 1 127. Q. 4. What are the two called 1 127. Q. 5. What are premises 1 127. Q. 6. What is the conclusion ? 127. Q. 7. What is an argument? 128. Q. 8. How many terms does a complete argument contain ? 129. Q. 9. What is the minor term 1 129. Q. 10. What is the major term 1 129. Q. 11. What is the middle term? 129. Q.. 12. What should be the character of the middle term ? 131. Q. 13. Should the minor term be included in, or excluded from the middle term? 132. Q. 14. How many propositions does an argument contain ? 133. Q. 15. What is the major premiss? 134. Q. 16. What is the minor premiss ? 134. Q. 17. What terms are compared together in the major premiss? 134. Q. 18. What terms are compared together in the minor premiss? 134. Q. 19. What terms are compared together in the conclusion ?* 134. * This, or the third proposition of the syllogism, is sometimes called, before it is proved, the question, afterwards the conclusion. s2 210 ON THE MATURE, &C. OF SYLLOGISM. Q. 30. Repeat the general law of syllogism, commonly called " Aristotle's dictum." 135. Q. 21. What is the definition of a perfect syllogism ]* 136. Q. 22. If two terms agree with the same middle term, what is your infer- ence? 137. Q. 23. If one term agrees, and another disagrees with one and the same middle term, what is your inference 1 138. Q. 24. What are called the extremes of a syllogism 1 Q. 25. In what proposition do the extremes stand together 1 Q. 26. What is the first rule relative to the correct construction of a syllo- gism 1 139. Q. 27. What is the second rule 1 140. Q, 28. What is the third rule 1 141. Q. 29. What is the fourth rule 1 142. Q. 30. What is the fifth rule ] 143. Q. 31. What is the sixth rule 1 144. Q. 32. Prove that you remember what A distributes. Q. 33. What does E distribute 1 Q. 34. What does I distribute 1 Q. 35. What does O distribute 1 Q. 36. Prove your knowledge of this by analyzing or parsing the syllogism given under Art. 144, note 6, and show whether it is true or false, according to the rules. CHAP. II. On the Moods and Figures of Syllogisms. INTRODUCTORY REMARKS. 1. It will be impossible correctly to understand and practise the subject of this chapter, without the recollection of a rule already given, (Art. 69, 2) relative to the signification of the four symbols, which logicians invariably employ to designate the character, as to quality and quantity, (Art. 94, Rule 5, note 3, and Rule 6, 7, 8, 9,) of the four principal propositions to which all are reducible : viz : ^ always signifies a uni- versal affirmative^ E a universal negative, I a particular * From luxKoxtviJ.0?, reasoning ; which is from ^vkKoytgo/uai, to reason ; from 2yv, together, and Aiywy to say, select, count, infer. ON THE MOODS, &C. OF SYLLOGISMS. 211 affirmative, and O a particular negative. Which is easily remembered by the aid of the mnemonic lines given, (Art. 70) viz: Universally, A affirms, and E denies. Particularly, I affirms, and O denies. 2. It has already been intimated that all syllogisms either are or may be reduced to the four moods of the first figure, which is in strict conformity with the Aristotelian precept, " Whatever is predicated of a whole class, (a distributed mid- dle,) may be predicated of anything contained in that class,'* when the four moods will be expressed by the four following associations, — A. A. A. E. A. E. A.I.I, and E. I. O. For example, A. Every flower fades. A. Every tulip is a flower ; therefore A.' Every tulip fades.* E. No flower is always in bloom. A. Every rose is a flower ; therefore E. No rose is always in bloom. A. All flowers are beautiful. I. Some things deciduous are flowers ; therefore I. Some things deciduous are beautiful. E. No star is dark. I. Some unseen are stars ; therefore O. Some stars unseen are not dark. 3. According to one of these four moods, viz: A. A. A. ; E. A. E. ; A. I. I. ; E. I. O. ; we may always construct our own syllogisms. In short they appear to be consistent with the usual order of thought, and doubtless are, with the definitions of a perfect syllogism, (Art. 136.) *' A perfect syllogism is an * Let it not be supposed, in consequence of syllogism being frequently se- lected, in logical treatises, of a short and simple character, that they often ex- press only an obvious truth. Syllogisms are universal in their application, com- prehending all subjects, whether of Divinity, science, of the arts, political eco- nomy, or of the general and common business of hfe ; in short, a syllogism exists, expressed or implied, wherever such illative words, as therefore, ivhere- fore, consequently, &c. rationally exists. But were selections, on every occa- sion made from the sciences, &c. they would not be so generally understood ; whilst one of a short compass, expressed in a few words, though it contain an obvious truth, is not selected on that account, but that it might briefly express in a miniature compass, a general form, or be the fac simile to which all others of the same mood and figure, and on any subject, obvious or not, may be reduced. 212 ON THE MOODS, &C. OF SYLLOGISMS. argument so expressed that the major term must be pre- dicated of the minor, consequent on that m,inor being con- tained in a middle term of which the same m,ajor is pre- dicated. 4. Nothing can be more simple and obvious than this gene- ral and infallible law of reasoning : its simplicity is such that it may be even ocularly elucidated by a geometrical figure : e.g. Predicates of the containing square. The Major, What it predicates of~ the square contained in | it. Middle Z Minor. —I Term. Predicates of the containing square. That is, All squares are four-sided figures, having all their sides equal, and their angles right angles. The figure z is a square ; therefore The figure z is a four-sided figure, having all its sides equal, and its angles right angles. 5. We may at least reduce all our reasoning to this sim- ple and obvious character, the propriety and necessary con- sequence of which is evident to the understanding, and thus evident to the eye. We shall, however, meet with syllogisms of a dilBTerent form, whether constructed such designedly or not ; and the first process w^e should, in such case adopt, would we be successful opponents of an adversary, is to convert them into one of the four moods of the first figure in which a fallacy will be more clearly exposed. Hence the necessity of this chapter on the moods and figures of syllogisms, and of the next, containing the rules necessary for their reduction. (Art. 145.) The mood of a syllogism is that order in which the characters of the propositions composing it succeed each other. 1. The character of a proposition is always denoted by ON THE MOODS, &C. OP SYLLOGISMS. 213 either A, E, I, or O. These are sufficiently expressive, and indicate all that it is necessary to attend to in this respect. 2. Since the major premiss may be either A, E, I, or 0, and the minor be likewise either, or four times four, the variety in the premises may be sixteen ; and since the conclusion is also capable of four variations, four times sixteen, or sixty- JbuTf is the number of different ways in which A, E, I and O can combine in three propositions. 3. This, however, is a mere arithmetical calculation, with- out any regard to those logical rules, which reject fifty-three out of the sixty-four, leaving but eleven combinations, viz: — AAA, AAI, AEE, AEO, All, AOO, EAE, EAO, ElO, lAI, OAO.* (Art. 146.) The figure of a syllogism is that position which the middle term assumes with respect to the extremes, 1. The extremes of a syllogism are always the minor and ^ major terms, which become the extremes of the conclusion. (Art. 147.) The middle term being the subject of the ma- jor, and predicate of the minor premiss, is the first figure. 1. This figure is the most natural and clear of all; it is to this that Aristotle's dictum applies, and it is the peculiar ex- cellency of this figure, that all questions may be proved by it, universal or particular, affirmative or negative ; consequently to this all other figures may be reduced. * The arithmetical combinations are AAA, AAE, AAI, AAO : AE A, AEE, AEI, AEO: AIA, AIE, All, AIO: AOA, AOE, AOI, AOO: EAA, EAE, EAI, EAO: EEA, EEE, EEI, EEO: EIA, EIE, EII, EIO: EOA, EOE, EOI, EOO: lAA, lAE, lAl, lAO : IE A, lEE, lEI, lEO: IIA, HE, III, IIO: IOA,IOE, 101,100: OAA, OAE, OAI, OAO: OEA, OEE, OEI, OEO: OIA, OIE, on, 010 : OOA, OOE, 001, 000. But sixteen of these are excluded by the fifth Rule (Art. 143,) because their premises are negative, viz. EEA, EEE, EEF, EEO : EOA, EOE, EOI, EOO: OEA, OEE, OEf, OEO: OOA, OOE, 001, 000. Twelve by the same Rule, (Art. 143,) because their premises are particular, viz. IIA, IIE, III, IIO: lOA, lOE, lOI, 100 : OIA, OIE, Oil, 010. Twelve by the sixth Rule, (Art. 144,) because one of the premises is negative and not the conclusion, viz. AEA, AEI: AOA, AOI: EAA, EAI: EIA, EII: lEA, lEI: OAA, OAI. Eight by the same Rule, (Art. 144,) because one of the premises is particular and not the conclusion, viz. AIA, AIE : AOE : EIE : lAA, lAE : lEE : OAE. Four, because the conclusion is negative, but neither of the premises : AAE, AAO : AIO : lAO. To which must be added I, E, 0, for an illicit process of the major in every figure. Therefore fifty-three moods are excluded, many of which offend against seve- ral rules. There consequently remain eleven, which only are useful in syllo- gism, which are already quoted above. 214 ON THE MOODS, &C. OF SYLLOGISMS. (Art. 148. ) The middle term being the predicate of both pre- mises, is the SECOND, and the subject of both is the third figure. (Art. 149.) The middle term being the predicate of the major, and subject of the minor premiss, is the fourth figure. 1. This figure, in every respect, is the reverse of the first ; and as that is the best, this is the v^orst, and most awkward ; and merits stating only that it may be, as shall be hereafter shown, reduced to the first. 2. The proper order of a syllogism is to place the major premiss, or that which compares the middle term with the major first, and the minor premiss, or that which compares the middle term with the minor next. 3. If, in the following examples, each middle term is marked as usual with a double line, they will show that varied posi- tion of the middle term which constitutes, according to the preceding rules, the four figures of syllogism. 1st Figure. All flowers are beautiful. Some things deciduous are flowers. Some things deciduous are beautiful. 2d Figure. Every flower is deciduous. No evergreen is deciduous. No evergreen is a flower. 3d Figure. All flowers are beautiful. Some flowers are deciduous. Some deciduous are beautiful. 4th Figure. Every flower is deciduous. Nothing deciduous is an evergreen. No evergreen is a flower. 4. This varied position of the middle term is frequently re- presented symbolically, by letters. Only let Y, wherever found, signify the middle term, Z the minor, and X the major, and the four figures can be thus exhibited. First Figure. Second Figure. Third Figure. Fourth Figure. YX XY YX XY ZY ZY YZ YZ ZX ZX ZX ZX ON THE MOODS, &.C. OP SYLLOGISMS. 215 ^* Between Y an X we may place either a negative or af- firmative copula ; and we may prefix either a universal or particular sign to Y. By applying the moods thus to each figure, it will be found that each figure will admit six moods only, without violating the rules |igainst undistributed middle, a.nd against illicit process; and of the moods so admitted, several, though valid, are useless, as having a particular con- clusion, when a universal might have been drawn;" as A. Every wicked man is miserable. A. All cruel men are wicked men ; therefore I. Some cruel men are wicked men. Which admits of a universal, therefore, in the first figure, A, A, I, is useless, and for the same reason E, A, O. (Art. 151.) The mnemonic line for the four figures, is sub- pre, twicepi^e, twicesub, presub. 1. The above four mnemonic words should be carefully committed to memory. They are easily understood, and refer, of course, to the premises, and not to the conclusion of a syl- logism. The first subpre intimates that the middle term is first the subject, then the predicate ; and as the same term cannot be both subject and predicate of the same proposition, it will be first the subject of the major, and then the predicate of the minor premiss. Twicepre intimates that, in the second figure, the middle term is first the predicate of the major, and then the predicate of the minor premiss. As a similar explanation applies to the other two words, their meaning is sufliciently evident ; they will be easily remembered, and found to contain " multum in parvo." 2. " Each of the allowable moods mentioned above, (Art. 145, 3) will not be allowable in every figure; since it may violate some of the foregoing rules in one figure, though not in another: e.g. I A I, is an allowable mood in the third figure, but in the first it would have an undistributed middle. So AEE, would in the first figure have an illicit process of the major, but is allowable in the second; and AAA, which in the first figure is allowable, would in the third have all illicit process of the minor, o. Because of an undistributed middle, the first figure excludes two moods, TAX; and A : the second four, AAA; AAI; All; I A I: and the fourth two, A II, and A O. Because of the illicit process of the major term, the first figure excludes four moods, AEE; AEO; AOO; lEO; 216 ON THE MOODS, &C. OP SYLLOGISMS. the second twoIEO: OAO; the third four AEE; AEO; AOO,andIEO; and the fourth two, I E O ; andOAO. Because of the illicit process of the minor term, the third excludes two AAA; E A E ; and the fourth two, AAA and EAR The following are also rejected as useless, because of a par- ticular conclusion when a universal might be drawn ; viz: the first figure, on this account, rejects A A I ; and E A O ; the second E A O; and AEO; and the fourth, AEO. 4. There remain then nineteen moods ; four in the first figure ; four in the second ; six in the third; and five in the fourth. 5. This statement of the several causes on account of which the above are rejected will be useful, for as they are possible, though not allowable combinations, we shall by reference to this enumeration, whenever they occur, be enabled by it, as well as by the rules, to say on what account they are impro- per or inconclusive, i. e. whether on account of, 1. *dn un- distributed middle ; 2. The illicit process of the major ; 3. The illicit process of the minor, or 4. On account of re- sulting in a particular conclusion, where a universal might be drawn. (Art. 151.) The four figures comprise nineteen regular moods. (Art. 152.) The mnemonic lines of the nineteen moods are. Figure 1. Barbara, Celarent, Darii, Ferio. Figure 2. Cesare, Camestres, Feslino, Baroko. Figure 3. Darapti, Disamis, Datisi, Felapton, Bokardo, Feliso. Figure 4. Bramantip, Camenes, Dimaris, Fesapo, Fresison. 1. These mnemonic lines will be found, in practice very convenient ; since in a few words, easily retained in memory, they not only comprise the nineteen moods, and indicate in what figure each allowable mood is found, but by their initial consonants, BCD F, (and no other initial consonant is found,) show to what mood in the first figure, as will be explained in the chapter on reduction, any of the remaining fifteen moods, may be reduced. Again, no other vowel but A E I O is em- ployed, which also signify the character of the three proposi- tions composing each mood. ThusBarbara,or bArbArA is ex- pressive of the first mood in the first figure, whose three pro- ON THE MOODS, &C. OF SYLLOGISMS. 217 positions AAA are three universal affirmatives. Camestres in the second figure, whose three propositions are A E E, and is reducible, as its initial consonant C declares to Celarent in the first figure : the use of the other letters composing these mnemonic words, and their several significations, will be shewn in the chapter on reduction. These lines should he carefully committed to memory. 2. By a careful inspection of them, it will be perceived, that the proposition A, can only be proved by the first figure; in which also conclusions E I O may be proved ; that the second figure proves only negative conclusions ; the third only particulars : that the first figure requires the major premiss to be universal, and the minor affirmative, &c. 3. It is somewhat amusing to observe, in what manner some, writers on Logic too, have been displeased with these lines : " Barbarous !" says one ; " barbarous Latin /" says another. To suppose that they ever were intended for Latin, when very few words of the whole catalogue have that character, is cer- tainly ingenious. A third contrives to keep them out of his book until the last sheet, when finding his mistake, he allows them to pass with a little abuse, but without any explanation of their service in reduction. " But cannot they be mended V says a fourth ; not knowing that as they stand, unmended, they are an excellent string of keys, so formed as to fit every ward, every varied sinuosity that fallacy, under the disguise of ob- scure mood and figure, has devised ; and to reduce the whole to the condition of a perfect syllogism, where truth must be seen and error exposed. They are mnemonic terms. And mnemonics have been highly appreciated by all acquainted with the value of the art, at least from the time of Crassus, Seneca and Cicero. Of words similar to these we shall find abundance in the treatises on mnemonics either by Feneigle, Grey or Murden. But who on looking into these works, jingles the peals of his own misconceptions by exclaiming " barbar- ous," ^' barbarous Latin," " Hexameters," &c. ; knowing that there is a utility in such artificial expressions, and that the greater in proportion to the more that for the memory can be expressed in a short compass. 4. Relative to the figures Dr. Whately makes the follow- ing remarks : " With respect to the use of the first three figures, (for the fourth is never employed but by an accidental awkwardness of expression,) it may be observed, that the first is that into which an argument will be found to fall the most naturally except in the following cases : — First, when we have T 218 ON THE MOODS, &C. OF SYLLOGISMS. to disprove something that has been maintained, or is likely to be believed, our arguments will usually be found to take most conveniently the form of the second figure ; viz : we prove that the thing that we are speaking of cannot belong to such a class, either because it wants what belongs to the whole of that class, (Cesare) or becanse it has something of which that class is destitute, (Camestres) ; e. g. "No impostor could have warned his followers, as Jesus did, of the persecu- tions they would have to submit to;" and again, "an enthu- siast would have expatiated, which Jesus and his followers did not, on the particulars of a future state." The same observa- tions will apply, mictatis mutandis, when a particular con- clusion is sought, as in Festino and Baroko. The arguments used in the process " Abscissio Infiniti,"* will in general be the most easily referred to this figure. The third figure is, of course, the one employed when the middle term is singular since a singular term can only be a subject. This is also the form into which most arguments will naturally fall that are used to establish an objection, (Enstasis of Aristotle) to an op- ponent's premiss, when his argument is such as to require that premiss to be universal. It might be called, therefore, the enstatic figure, e.g. if any one contend that "this or that doctrine ought not to be admitted because it cannot be ex- plained or comprehended ;" his suppressed major premiss may be refuted by the argument, that '^ the connexion of the body and soul cannot be explained or comprehended, &c. A great part of the reasoning of Butler's Analogy may be exhibited in this form.'' Unless we understand the precise meaning of Aristotle's general law, viz. " whatever is predicated of a whole class, may be predicated of any thing contained in that class," we may, on inspecting some of the following moods and figures, suppose them to be violations of this principle. But we have to recollect that by the whole class, the middle term is to be understood. The rule expressed with greater precision is, " Whatever may he predicated of a distributed middle, may be predicated of any thing contained in it ;" which of course implies, whatever is denied of a distributed mid- dle excludes from it all particulars in the whole class de- nied. But we are not at liberty to affirm any thing of a par- ticular not contained in a middle term, whether that be af- firmed of that middle or not ; except to affirm that the par- * See Art. 18, note 1. ON THE MOODS, &C. OF SYLLOGISMS. 219 ticular is no part of the middle when the minor term excludes itself. To determine these points, the middle term must al- ways be known. (See page 35 and seq.) The three cases to which we allude may be thus illustrated. No part of an eagle is iron. All half eagles are parts of an eagle; therefore No half eagle is iron. No money is iron. These tokens are iron ; therefore Not one of these tokens is money. Here it is not tokens that are thrown out of the class " iron," but money ; there is then excluded from the class iron, all particulars of the whole class (money) so excluded, whether eagles, dollars, cents, sovereigns, &c. Whoever has read Persius in Latin, and Homer in Greek, is a classic. Sancho read (not Persius in Latin, nor Homer in Greek ;) therefore Sancho was not a classic. Very true ; but we cannot prove it from a class to which poor Sancho never belonged. Bring. Sancho then to his pro- per class, and we shall have a proof; viz. Whoever has not read Persius in Latin, nor Homer in Greek, is not a classic. Sancho read not Persius in Latin, nor Homer in Greek ; therefore Sancho was not a classic. The First Figure. bAr. Every flower is deciduous. bA. Every tulip is a flower; therefore rA. Every tulip is deciduous. cE. No flower is an evergreen. lA. Every tulip is a flower ; therefore rEnt. No tulip is an evergreen. dA. All flowers are beautiful. rL Some deciduous plants are flowers ; therefore L Some deciduous plants are beautiful. ^^^ Oi\ THE MOODS, &C. OF SYLLOGISMS. f E. No f alling bo dy is a star. rl. Some luminous bodies are falling bodies ; therefore ^ • Some luminous bodies are not stars. The Second Figure. cEs. No planet is fixed. A. Every star is fixed ; therefore rE. No star is a planet! cAm. Every ^ is fixed.* Es. No planet is fixed ; therefore trEs. No planet is a star. fEs. No planet is a sun. tl. Some luminous bodies are suns ; therefore nO. Some luminous bodies are not planets. bAr. Every star is fixed. Ok. Some luminous bodies are not fixed ; therefore 0. Some luminous bodies are not stars. The Third Figure. d Ar. All flowers are beautiful. Ap. All flowers are deciduous ; therefore tl. Some deciduous are beautiful. dis. Some flowers are deciduous, Am. All flowers are beautiful ; therefore Is. Some beautiful are deciduous. dAt. All flowers are beautiful. Is. Some flowers are decidous ; therefore I Some deciduous are beautiful. fEl. No star is dark. A p. All stars are distant bodies ; tOn. Some distant bodies are not dark. * Comparatively, not absolutely so. ON THE MOODS, &C. OF SYLLOGISMS. 221 bOk. Some called Christians are not true believers Ar. All called Christians profess faith ; therefore dO. Some who profess faith are not true believers. f Er. No star is dark ; Is. Some stars are unseen ; therefore On. Some unseen are not dark. The Fourth Figure. brAm. Every precious stone is a gem ; An. Every gem is brilliant ; therefore tip. Some things brilliant are precious stones. cAm. Every star is a fixed body; En. No fixed body is a planet ; therefore Es. No planet is a star. dim. Some luminous bodies are comets. Ar. All comets are wandering planets ; therefore Is. Some wandering planets are luminous bodies. fEs. No falling body is a star. Ap. All stars are luminous ; therefore O. Some luminous bodies are not falling bodies. frEs. No fixed body is a comet. Is. Some comets are luminous ; therefore On. Some luminous bodies are not fixed bodies. INTERROGATORY EXAMINATION ON Chap. II. Q. 1. What do you understand by the mood of a syllogism 1 Art. 145, Q. 2. What is the figure of a syllogism ] 146. t2 222 ON THE MOODS, &C. OF SYLLOGISMS. Q. 3. When the middle term is the su'jject of the major and predicate the minor premiss, what is the figure 1 147. Q. 4. When the middle term is the predicate of both premises, what is the figure? 141. Q. 5. When the middle term is the subject of both premises, what is the figure] 148. Q. 6. When the middle term is the predicate of the major and subject of the minor premiss, what is the figure 1 149. Q. 7. Can you express all this by one mnemonic line ] 150. Q. 8. How many moods do the four figures contain ] 151. Q. 9. Can you repeat the mnemonic lines relative to these moods 1 153. Q. 10. What do the initial consonants of these mnemonic words signify ] 152, note. Q. 11. What do the vowels denote? 152, note. CHAP. III. On the Reduction of Syllogisms. (Art. 153.) The REDucTiojv of a syllogism is that process bj which an imperfect mood is changed into a perfect one of the first figure. 1. We are not to understand by the reduction of a syllo- gism, that we are at liberty to introduce any new term or pro- position. But syllogisms may at all times be reduced from the second, third or fourth figures to the first, declaring from the same premises the same conclusion, by inferential conversion (Art. 100 and 101) whether simple (Art. 102) or particular conversion (Art. 103,) and by the transposition of their pre- mises as occasion requires, as taught by the mnemonic lines, (Art. 152.) ON THE REDUCTION OF SYLLOGISMS. 223 (Art. 154.) Reduction is either ostensive, which shows that the conclusion is as it affirms ; or ad impossible, that it cannot be otherwise ; or if false, the reverse. 1. The method of reduction is taught by the mnemonic sym- bols (art. 152.) First. The initial consonants B C D F, (no others are em- ployed,) show to what mood {Barbara, Celarent, Darii, or Ferio) of the first figure, the reduction is to be made. Secondly. The vowels A E I (no others being used) in- dicate the character of the propositions, according to the well known signification of these symbols. Thirdly. M signifies that the premises are to be transpos- ed. S. P. denote that the proposition which the preceding vowel stands for, is to be converted, either S simply (art. 102) or V particularly (art. 103) and P in the mood Bramantip, intimates that the premises warrant a universal conclusion instead of a particular. Lastly. K is the mark of reduction ad impossible ; i. e. the proposition denoted by the vowel immediately before it must be left out, and the contradictory of the conclusion substituted ; which being done, we shall have in the first figure, a conclu- sion, either the same with that premiss, one convertible into it, or its contradictory, other letters are not used. 2. It will be proper here to remember according to art. 95, and art. 104 ; that A and O or £ and I are contradictories ; and By simple conversion E is converted into E, and T into I ; by particular conversion A into I ; and E into 0. (Art. 155.) For S P convert the proposition, either s simply, or p, particularly ; for M transpose the premises; and for K reduce ad impossible, by substituting instead of the premiss the contradictory of the conclusion, as A for 0, and E for I, and vice versa. 224 ON THE REDUCTION OF SYLLOGISMS. EXAMPLES OF OSTENSIVE REDUCTION. The reduction to the first figure of each of the following examples, will be found opposite to itself on the next page. The Second Figure. Convert the whole to the mood. ®Es No planet is fixed — convert simply '\ A Every star is fixed — as it is rE No star is a planet — as it is cAm Every star is fixed Es No planet is fixed : trEs No planet is a star fixed: ") ^^ fixed: J "" '^anspose the premises, f and simply convert E, convert simply, f Es No planet is a sun : tl Some luminous bodies are suns : convert simply as it is Celarent. Celarent. Ferio. nO Some luminous bodies are not planets: as it is The Third Figure. dAr All flowers are beautiful: as it is C convert t particularly as it is Ap All flowers are deciduous : tl Some deciduous are beautiful dis Some flowers are deciduous : "^ transpose and Am All fl^^;^ are beautiful : * 5 ''""-^^^ ^"""'"''^ ^' Is Some beautiful are deciduous : convert simply dAt All flowers are beautiful : Is Some flowers are plants : I Some plants are beautiful : as it is convert simply as it is Darii. Darii. Darii. f El No star is dark : as it IS Ap All stars are distant: convert particularly Q Eerio. tOn Some distant bodies are not dark : as it is j f Er No star is dark : as it is Is Some stars are unseen : convert simply On Some unseen are not dark : as it is Ferio. * Plants omitted for the sake of shortness ; easily understood, f By transposing the premises, understand, placing the minor premises in- stead of the major, and the major instead of the minor. ON THE REDUCTION OF SYLLOGISMS. 225 The examples opposite on the preceding page, reduced to The First Figure. cE No fixed body is a planet. I A Every star is fixed ; therefore rEnt No star is a planet. cE No fixed body is a planet. lA Every star is fixed ; therefore rE;nt No star is a planet. f E No sun is a planet. rl Some luminous bodies are suns ; therefore O Some luminous bodies are not planets. dA All flov^ers are beautiful. rl Some deciduous plants are flowers ; therefore I Some deciduous plants are beautiful. dA All flovs^ers are beautiful. rl I Some plants are flowers ; therefore Some plants are beautiful. fE No star is dark. rl Some distant bodies are stars ; therefore Some distant bodies are not dark. fE No star is dark. rl Some unseen are stars ; therefore O Some unseen are not dark. 226 ON THE SEDUCTION OF SYLLOGISMS. The fourth figure. brAm Every precious stone is a Z^^.^^^.p^,^ the 1 . _ . u -ii- * 1 premises. C Barbara. An Every gem is brilliant : J T tip Some brilliant stones are precious, change to universal. ^ c Am Every star is a fixedbodyj ^^^^^^^^^^ ^^^ "^ En No fixed body is a ^aliit: 5 ^''^"'''''' ^Celarent. Es No ^I^l^is altiT convert simph J dim Some luminous bodies are comets : ^ "^ i- transpose. ^ ^ .. Ar AH comets are irregular planets : J ^ ' Is Some irregular planets are luminous bodies, con. simply. ) fEs No falling body is a star : convert simply. "^ Ap All stars are luminous : convert particularly. ? Ferio. O Some luminous bodies are not falling bodies. as it is. \ frEs No fixed body is a comet : convert simply. J Is Some comets are luminous : convert simply. ^ ^^^' O Some lunimous bodies are not fixed. as it is. J ON THE REDUCTION OF SYLLOGISMS. 227 bAr Every gem is brilliant. bA Every precious stone is a gem. rA All precious stones are brilliant. cE No fixed body is a planet. lA Every star is a fixed body. rEnt No star is a planet. d A All comets are irregular planets. r I. Some luminous bodies are comets. I. Some luminous bodies are irregular planets. fE No star is a falling body. rl Some luminous bodies are stars. O Some luminous bodies are not falling bodies. fE No comet is a fixed body. rl Some luminous bodies are comets. O Some luminous bodies are not fixed bodies. 228 ON THE REDUCTION OF SYLLOGISMS. REDUCTION AD IMPOSSIBLE. (Art. 157.) "Reduction ad impossible proves, in the first figure, not directly that the original conclusion is true, but that it cannot be false, or that an absurdity would follow from the supposition of its being false." 1. This kind of reduction is chiefly employed for Baroko and Bokardo ; for example bAr. Every star is fixed. Ok. Some luminous bodies are not fixed. 0. Some luminous bodies are not stars. If this conclusion be not true, its contradictory must be true : let this then be tried, by substituting as K implies (Art. 154, n. 1) instead of the " proposition denoted by the vowel imme- diately before K, the contradictory of the conclusion.'^ If this lead to a true consequence, the above conclusion is false, oth- erwise true ; as bAr. Every star is fixed. bA. All luminous bodies are stars. r A. The false consequence to which this would lead, viz. all luminous bodies are fixed, proves that the original is true. bAr. All true patriots are friends to religion. Ok. Some great statesmen are not friends to religion. 0. Some great statesmen are not true patriots. The minor of this syllogism is false, and therefore leads to a false conclusion. But how is this to be proved ? It may be proved by the substitution of the contradictory of the conclu- sion, viz. "all great statesmen are true patriots," instead of the proposition of K : we shall then have both premises uni- versal, in the mood Barbara, and shall be warranted in draw- ing a universal conclusion; as, All true patriots are friends to religion. All great statesmen are true patriots. All great statesmen are fri ends to religion. This true conclusion proves the original one false from a false minor. Be this then the character of a great statesman, for such and such only are great. ON THE REDUCTION OP SYLLOGISMS. 229 INTERROGATORY EXAMINATION ON Chap. HI. Q. 1. Explain what is meant by the reduction of a syllogism. Art. 153. Q. 2. Into what figure is all reduction effected 1 154. Q. 3. What is ostensive reduction 1 154. Q. 4. What is reduction ad impossible ] 154. Q. 5. What do the initial consonants of the mnemonic lines, beginning with " Barbara, Celarent, Darii, Ferio," signify 1 154, notes. Q. 6. What do the vowels of those words denote 1 1 54, notes. Q. 7. When a mnemonic word begins with B, as Bramantip, into what mood of the first figure would you reduce 1 154, notes. Q. 8. When a mnemonic word begins with C, as Cesare, Camestres or Ca- menes, into what mood of the first figure would you reduce 1 154, notes. Q. 9. When a mnemonic word begins with D, as Darapti, Disamis, Datisi, Dimaris, into what mood of the first figure would you reduce 1 154, notes. Q. 10. When a mnemonic word begins with F, as Festino, Felapton, Fre- sison, into what mood of the first figure would you reduce ? 154n tes. Q. 11. What do the other consonants of these words, or consonants not initial, indicate 1 154, notes. Q. 12. Repeat the mnemonical lines, showing the meaning of these conso- nants. 155. Q. 13. What does S signify ] 155. Q. 14. What does P signify 1 155. Q. 15. What does M signify 1 155. Q. 16. What does K signify ■? 155. Q. 17. How would you reduce the mood Cesare 1 Q. 18. How would you reduce the mood Festino] Q. 19. How would you reduce the mood Darapti 1 Here further examples for exercise may be taken from the Appendix. U CHAP. IV. On Hypothetical Syllogisms. (Art. 157.) A hypothetical syllogism is that in which one or more of its propositions are conditional or disjunctive. 1. Example ; If there is a God, the v/orld is governed by providence. But there is a God ; therefore The world is governed by providence. 2. For the definition of a conditional proposition see Art. 81 ; of a disjunctive, Art. 80. 3. These syllogisms admit of two sorts of true argumenta- tion, whether the major is conditional or not. First, when the antecedent is asserted in the minor, that the consequent may be asserted in the conclusion ; as in the preceding: example. This is called arguing from the posi- tion of the antecedent to the position of the consequent. Secondly, when the consequent is contradicted in the minor proposition, that the antecedent may be contradicted in the conclusion; as, If Atheists are in the right, then the world exists without a cause. But the world does not exist without a cause ; therefore Atheists are not in the right. This is called arguing from removing of the consequent to the removing of the antecedent. 4. " When a hypothetical conclusion is inferred from a hy- pothetical premiss, so that the force of the reasoning does not turn on the hypothesis, then the hypothesis must be consider- ed as part of one of the terms, so that the reasoning will be in effect absolute ; as Predicate. Every conqueror is either a hero or a villain. Caesar was a conqueror ; therefore , ^ > Caesar was either a hero or a villain. 5. "But when the reasoning itself rests on a hypothesis, in which an absolute conclusion may be drawn from a hypotheti- cal premiss, this is what properly is called a hypothetical syl- ON HYPOTHETICAL SYLLOGISMS. 231 logism, and rules have been devised for ascertaining the vali- dity of such arguments at once without bringing them into the form of simple syllogisms. In these syllogisms the hypotheti- cal premiss is the major, and the absolute one the minor." For the general construction of a hypothetical syllogism is, that the first proposition is hypothetical, and the minor and conclusion absolute. (Art. 1 58.) A hypothetical proposition is either conditional; as, if he is w^ise, he is happy ; or disjunctive ; as, either it is true or it is false. (Art. 159.) A conditional syllogism is that vi^hose major pre- miss is conditional. * (Art. 160.) In a conditional proposition, the clause contain- ing the condition, is called the antecedent ; that containing the assertion, the consequent ; the connexion between them, the consequence. 1. The natural order is that the antecedent precede the consequent ; though this is frequently reversed ; as " The hus- bandman is well off, if he know his own advantages." — Virg. (Art. 161.) The rules of conditional propositions are three. Rule I. If the antecedent be granted, so is the consequent. Rule II. If the consequent be taken away, so is the ante- cedent. Rule III. Nothing can be inferred either from taking away the antecedent, or granting the consequent. 1. The truth or falsity of a conditional proposition depends entirely on the consequence ; as, if mineralogy be useless, it deserves to be neglected ; here both the antecedent and con- sequent are false ; yet the whole proposition is true ; i. e. it is true that the consequent follows from the antecedent. If men be fallible free agents, they need the restraints of gov ernment. But men are fallible free agents ; therefore Men need the restraints of government. 2. It is evident on the inspection of this example, 1st, that * Syllogisms are sometimes divided into 1st. Absolute, i. e. consisting of propositions which absolutely affirm or deny ; and 2dly. Hypothetical, or those which contain at least one proposition of a conditional character. 232 ON HYPOTHETICAL SYLLOGISMS. the major proposition is conditional, and the minor and con- clusion absolute. This then constitutes a hypothetical syllo- gism. 2. That the same major consists of two entire propo- sitions, which together make an enthymeme ; which enthy- meme, if absolutely expressed, would be, men are fallible free agents, therefore they need the restraints of govern- ment. But before we can make it absolute, the condition- ality of the major premiss, expressed by " if," must be de- stroyed. The minor premiss effects this, and by affirming ab- solutely, " men are fallible free agents," destroys if, and we have our enthymeme extricated from its difficulty, speaking unconditional language, " meii are faUible free agents, there- fore they need the restraints of government:" it is now, there- fore, reducible to the syllogistic form, viz: All fallible fr ee agents need the restraints of government. Men are fallible free agents ; therefore Men need the restraints of government. 3. Every conditional syllogism is either equivalent to an absolute syllogism, or wholly to be rejected. For in every conclusive conditional there is an absolute implied, in which the same argument would prove the same conclusion. 4. For in all hypothetical syllogisms the major proposition, consisting of two absolute propositions, (i. e. on the removal of the connective if) the minor is either one of these, or the con- tradictory to it, in order to infer, either the other, or its contra- dictory. In either case an enthymeme will be proposed, whose force lies in the conditional proposition, and which is not con- clusive unless from that proposition there can be drawn a com- pletory, that is, the premiss which is wanting in an enthymeme to complete the syllogism. 5. Now as an enthymeme is only one premiss with the con- clusion of a syllogism, it has three, and only three terms. Suppose two of them are D and a, and c the third term. The other premiss, whose terms are D, and a is wanting; hence it follows, that according to the various dispositions of the terms, there are four forms of enthymeme, each of which will admit of a twofold completory ; as in the following scheme. The Enthymeme. | The Completory Da | aD CD. therefore Ca. The Major. in Fig. 1. in Fig. II. DC. in Fig. in. in Fig. IV. CD. therefore aC. The Minor. in Fig. IV. in Fig. II. DC. in Fig. III. in Fig. I. 6. Wherefore, as there are nineteen moods of absolute syl- logism, and as each figure may be applied twice, to complete ON HYPOTHETICAL SYLLOGISMS. 233 an enthymeme, there will be thirty-eight ways, in which a man may argue with a syllogism, whose major is conditional. (Art. 162.) There are two kinds of conditional syllogism, the constructive, answering to direct reasoning, and the de- structive, answering to indirect reasoning. 1. The destructive *'is in fact a mode of throwing the indirect form of reasoning into the direct" ; as, " if C be not the centre of the circle, some other point must be ; which is impossible : therefore, C is the centre." Euclid, B. III. Pr. 1. (Art. 163.) The constructive is when, by granting the an- tecedent, you admit the consequent ; 1, as. Major prop. If this man has a fever, he is sick. Minor prop. This man has a fever ; therefore Conclusion. This man is sick. Major prop. If the crops are not bad, corn must be cheap. Minor prop. But the crops are not bad ; therefore Conclusion. Corn must be cheap. (Art. 163.) The destructive is when, by denying the con- sequent, you infer the contradictory of the antecedent. Major prop. If this man has a fever, he is sick. Minor prop. This man is not sick ; therefore ^ Conclusion. This man has not a fever. Major prop. If the crops are not bad, corn must be cheap. Minor prop. Corn is not cheap ; therefore Conclusion. The crops are bad. 2. But if you affirm the consequent^ or deny the antecedent^ you can infer nothing, (126) for the same consequence may follow from other antecedents ; as, in the case above, a man may be sick from other disorders besides a fever; therefore it does not follow from his being sick that he has a fever ; or, for the same reason, from his not having a fever, that he is not sick. It is evident, therefore, that there can only be two kinds of conditional syllogism; viz. 1, the constructive ; as if CD, then ka; but CD, therefore Ka; and the destructive; as if CD, then Ka; but not Ka, therefore not CD. (Art 165.) A disjunctive syllogism is that whose major pre- miss is disjunctive. The earth moves in a circle or an ellipse ; but The earth does not move in a circle ; therefore The earth moves in an ellipse. U3 234 ON HYPOTHETICAL SYLLOGISMS. 1. For the definition of a disjunctive proposition, see Art. 80. 2. A disjunctive syllogisnn naay, as the propositions of which it is composed, have many parts, i. e. subjects or predicates ; as It is either spring, summer, autumn or winter ; but It is not summer, autumn or winter ; therefore It is spring. (Art. 166.) Since any disjunctive is easily turned into a con- ditional, the directions given for the one serve equally for the other. 1. For example; It is either true or false. But it is true ; therefore it is not false. But it is false ; therefore it is not true. It is not true ; therefore it is not false. It is not false ; therefore it is not true. Instead of this, it is easy to say, If it is true, then it is not false. If it is false, then it is not true. If it is not true, then it is false. It is not false, then it is true, 2. " A Disjunctive may consist of any number of absolute propositions; and of these, some one at least must be true, or the whole proposition will be false : if, therefore, one or more of these absolute propositions be denied, you may infer that the remaining one, or (if several) some one of the remaining ones is true ; as, " either the earth is eternal, or the work of chance, or the work of an intelligent Being ;" it is not eternal nor the work of chance ; therefore it is the work of an intelli- gent Being. 3. In examples similar to these it is implied not only that one of the members must be true, but that only one can be true ; so that in such cases, if one or more be affirmed, the rest may be denied. But this is by no means universally the case; as, virtue tends to procure us either the esteem of mankind or the favor of God ; here both members are true, and conse- quently by affirming one we are not authorised to deny the other. (Art. 167.) A dilemma is a conditional syllogism with two or more antecedents in the major, and a disjunctive minor. Major. '• If ^schines joined in the public rejoicings, he is inconsistent ; if he did not he is unpatriotic. Minor. But ^schines either joined or did not; Conclus. ^schines is either inconsistent or unpatriotic." [Demosth. fok the crowk. ON HYPOTHETICAL SYLLOGISMS. 235 3. This kind of reasoning, is very connmon with Euclid ; when about to demonstrate the equality of two figures, he frequently assumes that if the one is not equal to the other, it is either greater or less : and having destroyed both these sup- positions on which the assertion of their inequality can rest, he thence infers, by this indirect reasoning, the equality of the figures, and the absurdity of its contradiction. 3. The two conditionals that constitute the major premiss may sometimes be omitted in one proposition by means of the word, whether ; as, " if the blest in heaven have no desires, they will be perfectly content ; so they will be if their desires are fully gratified;" may be reduced to" whether the blest, &c. have no desires, or have them gratified they will be con- tent.'' 4. If the several antecedents have each a different con- sequent, then the antecedents being disjunctively granted, you can only disjunctively infer the consequent as in the first ex- ample. This case is that of the constructive dilemma. 5. '* In the destructive form if you deny the whole of the consequent or consequents, you may deny the whole of the antecedents ; as " if the world were eternal, the most useful arts, (such as printing, &c.) would be of unknown antiquity :" and on the same supposition there would be records long prior to the Mosaic ; and likewise the sea and land, in all parts of the globe might be expected to maintain the same relative situations now as formerly ; but none of these is the fact, there- fore the world is not eternal. 6. Or, Major. If the world existed from eternity there would be records prior to the Mosaic : and if it were produced by chance it would not bear marks of design. Minor. But there are no records prior to the Mosaic ; and the world does bear marks of design ; therefore Conclas. The world neither existed from eternity, nor is it the work of chance. 7. " These, though commonly called dilemmas, hardly differ from conditional syllogisms, two or more being expressed to- gether. Nor is the case different, if you have one antecedent with several consequents, which consequents you disjunctively deny ; for that comes to the same thing as wholly denying them ; since if they be not all true, the one antecedent must equally fall to the ground ; and the syllogism will be equally simple. 8. That is more properly called a destructive dilemma which has a disjunctive minor premiss ; i. e. when you have 236 ON hy'pothetical syllogisms. several antecedents with each a different consequent ; which consequents, instead of wholly denying them, you disjunctive- ly deny; and thence, in the conclusion, deny disjunctively the antecedents; as, Major. If this man were wise, he would not speak irreverently of Scripture in jest ; and if he were good, he would not do so in earnest ; JSiinor. But he does it either in jest or in earnest; therefore Conclus. This man is either not wise, or he is not good. 9. '^ Every dilemma may be reduced into two or more sim- ple, absolute syllogisms : as, the first example, * If ^schines joined, &c. he is inconsistent ; he did join, &c. therefore he is inconsistent;' and again, 'If ^Eschines did not join, &c. he is unpatriotic ; he did not, &c. therefore he is unpatriotic' Now an opponent has his choice to deny either, of the minor pre- mises, but he cannot deny both, and therefore he must ad- mit one or other of the conclusions : for when a dilemma is employed, it is supposed that some one of the antecedents is true ; or, in the destructive kind, some one of the consequents false, but that we cannot tell which of them is so, and this is the reason why the argument is stated in the form of a dilem- ma."— Z?r. Whately. 10. A dilemma is of no force, unless, 1. One or the other part must be accepted. 2. Either one or the other prove the point. And 3. It cannot be retorted. For example Bias tells you, " If you marry a beautiful woman, she will be vain ; if an ugly one, despised ; therefore marry none." Now had Bias observed the three conditions specified he would have perceived that his argument fails in every particular ; for, 1. A wife may neither be beautiful nor ugly ; therefore neither part of the dilemma need be accepted. 2. Neither is every beautiful wo- man vain, nor every ugly one despised. Therefore neither part of it proves the point. 3. It may be retorted thus, If I marry the one at least she will not be vain ; if the other, she will not be despised. 11. To exemplify the dilemma further, and the mode of re- torting it, the following case is quoted. Euathlus promised Pro- tagoras a reward when he had taught him the art of plead- ing and it was to be paid on the first day that he gained any cause in the court. After some time Protagoras goes to law with Euathlus for the reward, and uses this dilemma. Either the cause will go on my side, or on yours ; If the cause go on ray side, you must pay ms according to the sentence of the judge. If the cause go on your side, you must pay me according to your bargain ; there- fore Whether the cause go for me or against me, you must pay me the reward. ON HYPOTHETICAL SYLLOGISMS. 137 But Euathlus retorted this dilemma thus ; Either I shall gain the cause or lose it ; If I gain the cause then nothing will be due to you, according to the sentence of the judge ; But if I lose the cause nothing will be due to you, according to my bargain ; therefore Whether I lose or gain the cause, nothing will be due to you. (Art. 168.) Hypothetical syllogisms may be reduced to the absolute form by considering every conditional proposition a universal affirmative, of which the terms are entire propositions, viz: the antecedent the subject, and the consequent the pre- dicate; as, If the stoics are right, then pain is no evil ; But pain is an evil ; therefore The stoics are not right. Reduced thus : The case of the stoics being right, is the case of pain being no evil ; The present case is not the case of pain being no evil ; therefore The present case is not the case of the stoics being right. This is Camestres, Vvhich is easily reduced to Celarent ; or all conditional syllogisms may be reduced to Barbara, by con- sidering them as constructive. 2. The reduction of Hypotheticals may be always effected either in the manner stated, or by unfolding the argument into two syllogisms ; or we may, when requisite, subject any argu- ment io the test of Aristotle's dictum, in order to show that all reasoning turns upon one simple principle. 3. Certain writers on the subject of Logic have specified other kinds of what they conceive to be syllogism ; some of which, however, are not even argument, but propositions, each expressing its own truth, placed the one after the other, in consecutive, or grammatical, but not in argumentative connec- tion. These, whatever writers on Logic may do, Logic itself does not recognize, until they are reduced, as all, not exclud- ing hypotheticals, may, to the one only form it proposes as a universal test, by which to try not one or fifty modes, but the whole of all argumentation, and of every thing having the least claim to that character ; to which if any thing assum- ing the appearance of reasoning does not conform, nor bear the rigor of its examination, it certainly is to be rejected, as that which classes with fallacy and not with either truth or argument. 238 ON HYPOTHETICAL SYLLOGISMS. INTERROGATORY EXAMINATION ON Chap. IV. Q. 1. What is meant by a hypothetical syllogism'? Art. 157. Q. 2. How many kinds of hypothetical syllogisms do you enumerate 1 158. Q. 3. What are the parts of a conditional proposition'? 160. Q. 4. Repeat the rules of hypothetical syllogisms. 161. Q. 5. If you grant the antecedent what is the result 1 161. Q. 6, If you deny the consequent what is the result 1 161. Q. 7. What is a disjunctive syllogism '? 165. Q. 8. What is a dilemma? 167. CHAP. V. On the Enthymeme^ Sorites, Induction, S^c. There are certain other forms of argument, whose ordinary form, though not in regular syllogistic order, may be easily reduced to it, or to the test of the general law of reasoning. These either are syllogisms with a suppressed premiss, a series of abridged syllogisms, or one or more expanded ; such as the enthymeme, the sorites, the epichirema, &c. (Art. 169.) The enthymeme is a syllogism with one premiss suppressed. 1. As, '< he is a good man ; therefore, he is happy.'' Here the major premiss " all good men arc happy," is suppressed. " Every man is mortal ; therefore every king is mortal ;" here the minor, " every king is a man," is the suppressed premiss. 2. Sometimes the whole argument is abridged into one sen- tence ; as, " being mortal, do not bear immortal hatred ;" but as all the terms v^ill be found in the expressed premiss and con- clusion, it will be easy to fill up the syllogism by supplying the premiss that is wanting. 3. This is the ordinary form of speaking or writing. It is evident that the enthymeme may be filled up hypothetically. ON THE ENTHYMEME, SORITES, INDUCTION, &C. 2^ The premiss of an enthymeme is sometimes called the ante- cedent, the conclusion, the inference, and the suppressed pre- miss, the completory. 4. The moment an enthymeme is contested, it will be ne- cessary to add the completory, and to prove the whole by the stricter rules that apply exclusively to the syllogistic form. (Art. 170.) A sorites is a series of abridged syllogisms, so arranged that the conclusion only of each is made the pre- miss of the next ; and \h^ predicate of every preceding pro- position is made the subject of the next, until the predicate of the last is predicated of the subject of ihe first. 1. As, There can be no enjoyment of property without government. No government without laws enforced. No laws enforced without a magistrate. No magistrate without obedience. And no obedience where every one acts as he pleases ; therefore There can be no enjoyment of property, where every one acts as he pleases, 2. A sorites has as many middle terms as there are inter- mediate propositions between the first and the last ; and con- sequently it may be drawn out into as many separate syllo- gisms. This kind of argument, therefore, as it serves to unite several syllogisms into one, must stand upon the same founda- tion with the syllogisms of which it consists ; and is, indeed, properly speaking, no other than a compendious way of rea- soning syllogistically, and can be tried only by the same test. 4. A series of hypothetical syllogisms, may, in a similar manner, be abridged into a sorites ; as If the Scriptures are the word of God, it is important that they should be well explained. If it is important that they should be well explained, they deserve to be di- ligently studied. If they deserve to be diligently studied, an order of men should be set aside for that purpose, But the Scriptures are the word of God ; therefore, an order of men should be set aside for that purpose. (Art. 171.) The Epichirema is a syllogism in which the major and minor are proved before the conclusion ; as. Major. Parties that aim at universal supremacy are not eligible to the exercise of the legislative function. 240 ON THE ENTHYMEME, SORITES, INDUCTIOX, &C. Because all their legislative acts would be biassed by an aim incompatible with the general welfare, and with the established principles of a free state. Minor. The party x — y aims at universal supremacy, > ■ This is proved, 1st, by their principles written and declared in authentic and acknowledged documents. 2dly, By their acts approved or not censured by their polity. 3dly, By the injurious means adopted to disseminate or enforce those prin- ciples, and sanction those acts; therefore Conclus. The party x — y is not eligible to the exercise of the legislative function. Example 2d. Major. A religion attested by miracles is from God. Because an infinitely wise, benevolent Being, that ordains and preserves the laws of nature, would not allow them to be suspended or controlled, except for purposes congenial to his own nature, and promotive .of his wise and benevolent designs. Minor. The Christian Religion was attested by miracles. This is attested 1st, By those who could have no worldly prospect in view consequent on such testimony, but, on the contrary, had to contemplate, as the inevitable consequence, every secular privation and affliction, and even loss of proper- ty and life, by all the cruelties that persecution and the opposers of Christianity could inflict. 2. By the testimony of the very enemies and opposers of Christianity themselves, as appears from the evidence of many profane writers; and " fas est doceri ab hoste." 3. By the benign and happy effects on the moralization and reform of mankind, consequent on an efficient embracing of that Christianity in all its consequences, which is attested by miracles. Conclusion, therefore, The Christian Religion is from God. 3. The epichirema is simply an expanded syllogism. It may frequently be employed in writing, in orations, and in treatises. Each part of the argument involving a series of inferential and conclusive enthymemes or syllogisms, as dis- tinct parts of the original premiss, though not formally expressed as such, comprises its own proof. Thus, the origi- nal major and minor premiss of the involving syllogism is distinctly proved, as the argumentative^ process moves to the conclusion. ON THE ENTHYMEME, SORITES, &C. 241 4. We are not to infer from the terms usually employed to denote the different subjects or objects of reasoning, as, a prio- ri, a posteriori, a fortiori, direct or indirect demonstration, argumentum ad hominem, ad verecundiam, ad ignoran- tiam, ad populam, or ad judicium, that these or any of them express any different kind o( argument as to form; they merely differ according to the nature of the middle term selected, or the object in view, and are either enthematic or reducible, in common with every process of reasoning, to the general form, in which alone they may be subject to the tests pecuHar to the syllogism. 5. Reasoning a priori, is that which infers an effect from its necessary cause, as when we prove that the sun will be eclipsed when the moon intervenes between us and him. Reasoning a posteriori, is that which infers the cause from its effect, as when we infer that the earth is spherical, from its shadow on the moon, or the possibihty of its being circum- navigated. Reasoning a fortiort,* consists in deducing a proposition as true, from a less to a more obvious proposition, involved by the same principle. Thus, if the felon, who robs on the highway, deserves the punishment of death, this retribu- tion is due to the stronger case, to the wretch guilty of parricide. 6. Reasoning is direct, when the proofs are so selected as to show immediately the agreement or disagreement between the subject and predicate of the conclusion. It is indirect, when the predicate of the conclusion admits an alternative, the one the contradictory of the other, so that, if one is true, the other must be false or absurd, and there is no medium but to accept of this absurdity, or to admit the only conclusion that can, in such case, be true. Thus Euclid proves by an indirect course, that "if two circles touch each other inter- nally, they cannot have the same centre." He first supposes the contrary to be true, namely, that the two circles have the same centre, and no third supposition can be made, for they must either both have the same centre or not. He then demonstrates the impossibility of the case assumed, and then infers the truth of the proposition which he first asserted. Thus it is proved that the moon is either opaque or transpa- rent; as, it is not transparent, because, if it were, it would transmit the rays of the sun through it when it comes between the sun and the earth, and no eclipse of the sun could happen * A fortiori can only mean,/row: a stronger case, to one less so, but in the sense in which it is commonly interpreted, it should be ad fortiorera, to a stronger, &c. X 242 ON THE ENTHYMEME, SORITES, &C. from the intervention of it between the sun and the earth* But this conclusion is contrary to truth, for such eclipses do happen. The alternative, therefore, that the moon is a trans- parent body must be false, and consequently the original predicate must be true, viz. that the moon is an opaque body. The refutation of the alternative is always pursued till it terminate in some contradiction or absurdity, and on this account, indirect reasoning is generally termed '^reductio ad ahsurdumP 7. Argumentum ad hominem, literally an argument, not to a man, but to the man, that particular character with whom you are engaged ; or even though a singular itself, in the plu- ral sense, to the men, according to the peculiarity of their principles, opinions or prejudices. It is frequently employed for a good purpose, and occasionally, for such sometimes is either the narrow-mindedness or obstinacy of men, necessarily so. '> -o s ^ ^ c ^ o i ° - to o "&D 'J3 o »- -1 °Ph § := ^" i: ^ ° 2 c o . o .2 § s o. >- « s ■- O . C - - •S 2 W) CU 03 .5 S =" c c'ii ^ s c ... fa •as 02 C r,, rl 0) s5 .2 « ]? SC en - guages at least, the Hebrew, Greek and Latin, to which also we are every where indebted for the formation of our own, has not been as yet duly appreciated.) ^ Rule 2. We must possess an intimate acquaintance with the sub- ject of the writing. Many words have different significations in different sciences and arts ; and the particular meaning they were intended to convey, in any instance, must be agreeable to the na- ture of the subject on which they were employed. Rule 3. The interpretation of a writing often requires a knowl- edge of the character of its author. His peculiar bent of mind, his * The rules of interpretation and controversy may be found in Kirwan's Logic, vol. II. and Hedge's Logic, pages 157 to 167. APPENDIX. 299 temperament, his vocation, and especially his political or religious tenets, should be understood. Rule 4. If the writing to be interpreted be of ancient date, the interpreter should ascertain the genuineness of his text ; whether it has descended to him as it came from the author, without any cor- ruptions or interpolations from other hands. Rule 5. The interpreter should also be well acquainted with the history of the country, and of the period in which the author wrote. Some words have different meanings in different ages, and writers are sometimes influenced by fashion, or circumstances of a local and temporary nature. Rule 6. The mind of the interpreter should be wholly free from all antecedent bias in favor of any system or creed that might influ- ence his judgment in the interpretation he is about to make. Rule 7. In making the interpretation of a document, the subject and predicate of each proposition should be carefully distinguish- ed ; the various sentences and clauses should be construed in re- ference to each other ; and the resulting sense of all the parts should be connected and consistent. Rule 8. Words, which admit of different senses, should be taken in their most common and obvious meaning, or in such as their con- text obviously requires, and consistent with the known intention of the writer. Rule 9. When any word or expression is ambiguous, and may, consistently with the common use then existing, be understood in different senses, it must be taken in that sense, which is agreeable to the subject, of which the writer was then treating. Rule 10. Doubtful words and phrases must always be construed in such a sense as will make them produce some effect, in pre- ference to one, if such exist, as may render them nugatory. Rule 11. Violations of the rules of grammar do not vitiate a writing, in which the sense is distinctly expressed. When a pas- sage is imperfect, or unintelligible, the interpreter is at liberty to supply such words as are manifestly necessary to render its sense complete ; taking special care at the same time, to keep without in- terpolation what he supplies detached from the text, and strongly distinguished as a paraphrase, or as his own interpretation, to which he should add his own name, date and place, when and where his marginal or other note was annexed or subjoined. But he is not allowed in an analogous case to expunge certain words from the text in order to give an intelligible meaning to those that remain. Rule 12. When there are no special reasons for the contrary, words should be construed in their literal rather than in their figura- tive sense ; relative words should be refered to the nearest rather than to a remote antecedent ; and words which are capable of being understood in either, should be taken in their generic rather than in their special sense. Rule 13. However general may be the words, in which a cove- 300 APPENDIX. nant is expressed, it comprehends those things only, on which it appears the parties intended to contract, and not those, which they had not in view. But when the object of the covenant is an uni- versaUty of things, it comprehends all the particular things which compose that universality, even those, of which the parties had no knowledge. Rule 14. Whatever is obscure or doubtful in a covenant should be interpreted by the intention of the parties. If the intention of the parties does not appear from the words of the covenant, it should be infered from the existing customs and usages of the place in which it was made. If the words of a covenant contradict the well known intention of the parties, this intention must be regard- ed rather than the words. Rule 15. When former interpreters are appealed to, in order to establish the sense of an ancient writing, those caeteris paribus, should be prefered, who were nearest the author in time or place, and who had therefore better advantages for knowing his mind, than more distant commentators. SECTION IV. Rules of Controversy. Rule I. The terms, to which the question in debate is expressed, and the precise point at issue, should be so clearly defined, that there could be no misunderstanding respecting them. This alone frequently will terminate the controversy at once. The want of it is often the sole origin from which controversy and all the unplea- santry attending it arises. Rule 2. The parties should mutually consider each other as standing on a fooling of equality in respect to the subject in debate ; and that it is possible that he may be wrong and his adversary in the right. (The latter part of this rule, in certain cases, must be taken cum grano salis.) Rule 3. AH expressions which are unmeaning, and not of direct relevancy to the subject in debate, should be avoided. Rule 4. Personal reflection, that is where a name or a tJharacter is expressly connected with a name, should in no instance be in- dulged. Rule 5. No one has a right to accuse his adversary of indirect motives. Rule 6. The consequences of any proposition are not to be charged on an adversary, except they are not only injurious to morals and society, but also logically deducible from that propo- sition. APPENDIX. 301 Rule 7. As truth is the professed object of controversy, whatever proofs may be advanced on either side should be examined with fairness and candor ; and any attempt to ensnare an adversary by the arts of sophistry, or to lessen the force of his reasoning by witj cavilling, or ridicule, is a violation of the rules of honorable con- troversy. SECTION V. On Method, Method is such a disposition of the parts of any art, science or discourse, that the whole may be more easily taught or learned. It is two-fold. 1. Method of invention, which finds the rules of an ai't or science ; here the inductive process and analogy are useful. 2. Method of instruction, which delivers them : and here direct or syllogistic argumentation, or what it implies, is proper. The former proceeds from sensible and particular things, to intelli- gible and universal ; the latter from intelligible and universal things to sensible and particular. The method of instruction is either perfect or imperfect. The former is either 1, universal, by which a whole art or science, or 2, particular, by which a part of it only is taught. Both are either 1, synthetical, which is used in the sciences, and beginning with the principles of a science, proceeds to the several parts and species^ completing the genus : or 2, analytical, which is of use in the arts ; iand beginning with the end or design of an art, explains the subject of it, and lastly its parts. Analysis is that process by which a compound body is reduced to its elementary parts, and the pro^ perty of the whole infered from its parts. Synthesis is the reverse, and implies the act or method of collecting and putting those parts together. The general rules of method are these : In delivering an art or science, 1. Let nothing be wanting or redundant. 2. Let all the parts be consistent with each other. 3. Let nothing be treated of which is not homogeneous to the end of the art or subject of the science. 4. Let the parts be connected by easy transitions. 5. Let that precede without which the things that follow cannot be understood, but which itself can be understood without them. The particular rules are these : 1. The unity of a science de^- pends on the unity of its subject ; the unity of an art on the unity of its end. 2. Let the more general parts precede the less general. The imperfect method is arbitrary and popular ; being no othei' than the method of prudence and common sense. For a brief view and recommendation of the mathematical method see page 72, note 5. Ce 302 APPENDIX. ON THE METHOD OF USING LOGIC IN EITHIiR ART OR SCIENCE. [Extracted from Bishop Sanderson.] 1st, On treating on a simple theme. We may use the rules of Logic, in treating either on a simple theme, or a problem or proposition. In treating logically on a simple term, we are to explain both the nanie and the thing. And I. The name, by 1, Pointing out the ambiguity of the term, (if there be any,) recounting its various significations, and fixing on that particular meaning in which we at present take it. 2. Show- ing its various appellations both in our own and in other tongues. S, Observing whence it is derived, with the more remarkable words of the same derivation. Not that all this is necessary to be done at all times, and on every theme ; but this is the place where it should be done, when necessary ; in which there will be need of discretion to notice those particulars only which conduce to the explication of the thing. II. The thing is explained by assigning its attributes, and dis- tributing or dividing it into its parts. The attributes are either essential or non-essential. By essential we understand, not only those which properly constitute its essence, the genus znd essential difference ; but also the properties of substances, the subjects and objects of accidents, with the efficient and final causes of both. The genus should be assigned in the first place, and that the nearest which can be found, though premising, if occasion be, those which are more remote. The difference comes next : the want of which is supplied, and the nature more fully explained by proper- ties. And here may be added, the efficient, principal, impulsive and instrumental causes, with the remote or proximate ends. Here also in treating on an accident, may be subjoined, its proper subject and adequate object. But these, more or less, as need shall require ; which are to be closed with a complete essential (logical) definition of the thing. III. The theme is next to be distributed into its several species or parts ; just to name which is generally sufiicient. From distri- bution we proceed to the non-essential attributes, whether eflfects, relative or opposite terms. IV. Such effects as are trivial, or commonly known, may either be just mentioned or passed over in silence. Those which are of consequence and less known, may be ranged under proper heads. This is also the place for citing examples. Relative words are those which are compared with the theme, as agreeing with it : opposite, as differing from it. A theme is ex- plained by comparing it with its relatives, when things are mentioned which are, in some respects the same or similar, and it is shown APPENDIX. 303 wherein that identity or similarity consists, and also wherein is the distinction or dissimilarity between them. We, in the last place, compare the theme with its opposites ; for even opposites cast light upon each other. There are four species of these ; but the contradictory is usually too vague and indefinite to be of any service. And the relative opposite has been men- tioned before, among the essential attributes. Therefore, the pri- vative and contrary opposites only have place here, and very proe. perly close the treatise. To gi\Q an example of this, suppose the simple theme to be treated on be Envy. I am^rs^ to consider the name: and here I observe, 1. It may mean either actively or passively ; as *' He is full of envy ;" that is, he envies others. " A rich man is much exposed to eaivy ;" that is, to be envied by others. We take it in the former sense. 2. This is in Latin termed Invidia^ a word which has been borrowed by many modern languages. The Romans also termed it Livor. 3. The word Invidia is supposed to be derived from two Latin words, that imply the " looking much upon another," (rather look- ing in, or into another's circumstances) which the envious are apt to do : the word livor from the livid complexion which usually at- tends the envious temper. There are two words of the same derivation, which are frequent- ly confounded with each other, namely invidious and envious; and yet the signification of the one is widely different from that of the other. An envious man, is one who is under the power of envy ; an invidious office, one that is apt to raise envy or dislike. II. In explaining the thing, 1 observe, y2rs?, the essential attri- butes ; as, The genus: to premise the more remote; it is a passion, a sort of grief; but the nearest genus, is a vicious grief. I next observe i\iQ difference, taken 1. From the subject, which are almost all mankind ; but chiefly those who are ignorant of God, and consequently unable to govern themselves. 2. From the object, which is two-fold ; of the thing, or of the person. The thing envied, may be good of any kind ; apparent or real, useful or pleasant ; of mind, body or fortune. The person envied, may be any other man, superior, equal, or inferior; only not at a great distance, either of time, of place, or of condition. For few envy them that have been long dead, them that live in China or Japan ; or those who are above or beneath them beyond ordinary degrees of comparison. 3. From the efficient cause. The principal internal cause in him that envies, is pride and inordinate self-love. The impulsive external QdiUse may be various, either in him that is envied, if he 304 APPENDIX. be an enemy, a rival, a vain boaster; or in some third person^ as contempt, flattery, oblique insinuations ; any of which may stir up envy. We may, therefore, define envy to be, either more briefly, a vi- cious grief at the good of another ; or more fully, an evil sadness of mind, whereby a man, from inordinate self-love, is troubled at the good which he sees another enjoy, or foresees he will enjoy, as he imagines it will lessen or obscure his own happiness. III. There are three species of envy, each worse than the pre- ceding: the first, when a man is pained at another's enjoying some good, (in kind or degree) which he cannot himself attain : the se- cond, when a man is pained at another's having what he himself has, but wants to have alone : both these are exemplified in Caesar, who could bear no superior ; and in Pompey, who could bear no equal. The third, is, when a man cannot or will not enjoy his own good, lest another should enjoy it with him. It is well known how many in the learned world are infected with this disease. The effects of envy are three. 1. It torments the mind contin- ually, and spreads inquietude through the whole life. 2. It wastes even the bodily strength, and exhausts the spirits. A most just evil which is at once a sin and a punishment, and not less a scourge than it is a vice. 3. It incites a man to all- manner of wickedness, detraction, calumny, strife, murder. Its most remarkable relatives are, 1 . Hatred, which agrees with envy in its subject ; for he who envys another, cannot but hate him ; and in its efficient internal cause, which in both is pride and blind self-love. 2. Rejoicing in evil; this also agrees with envy both in its sub- ject, (for he that grieves at another's happiness, cannot but rejoice in his misery,) and in its efficient cause. And yet hatred diflJers from envy, 1. In the thing ha|ed or en- vied. For good is only envied ; but either good or evil may be hated. 2. In the person. For we envy men only,, not God ; and not ourselves, but others ; but we may hate both other men, and ourselves ; both other things, and God himself. Rejoicing in evil diflfers likewise from envy. 1. In the genus, for the genus of the latter is sorrow, of the former joy. 2. In the. object, which, in the one is evil, in the other good. The grand opposite to envy is benevolence, a tender good-wijl to all men, which constrains us to wish well to all, and seriously to rejoice in all the good that befalls them. 2cZ. On treating on a problem. k problem is a proposition to be proved. It is sometimes fully |)Toposed, whether jwsitively* £^s., 'a Logic is